<SPAN name="startofbook"></SPAN>
<h1>Winesburg, Ohio</h1>
<h2 class="no-break">by Sherwood Anderson</h2>
<hr />
<h2>Contents</h2>
<table summary="" >
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#pref01">INTRODUCTION by Irving Howe</SPAN><br/><br/></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap00"><b>THE TALES AND THE PERSONS</b></SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap01">THE BOOK OF THE GROTESQUE</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap02">HANDS, concerning Wing Biddlebaum</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap03">PAPER PILLS, concerning Doctor Reefy</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap04">MOTHER, concerning Elizabeth Willard</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap05">THE PHILOSOPHER, concerning Doctor Parcival</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap06">NOBODY KNOWS, concerning Louise Trunnion</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap07">GODLINESS (Parts I), concerning Jesse Bentley</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap08">GODLINESS (Parts II), concerning Jesse Bentley</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap09">SURRENDER (Part III), concerning Louise Bentley</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap10">TERROR (Part IV), concerning David Hardy</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap11">A MAN OF IDEAS, concerning Joe Welling</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap12">ADVENTURE, concerning Alice Hindman</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap13">RESPECTABILITY, concerning Wash Williams</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap14">THE THINKER, concerning Seth Richmond</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap15">TANDY, concerning Tandy Hard</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap16">THE STRENGTH OF GOD, concerning the Reverend Curtis Hartman</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap17">THE TEACHER, concerning Kate Swift</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap18">LONELINESS, concerning Enoch Robinson</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap19">AN AWAKENING, concerning Belle Carpenter</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap20">“QUEER,” concerning Elmer Cowley</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap21">THE UNTOLD LIE, concerning Ray Pearson</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap22">DRINK, concerning Tom Foster</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap23">DEATH, concerning Doctor Reefy and Elizabeth Willard</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap24">SOPHISTICATION, concerning Helen White</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap25">DEPARTURE, concerning George Willard</SPAN></td>
</tr>
</table>
<h2><SPAN name="pref01"></SPAN>INTRODUCTION</h2>
<p class="letter">
by Irving Howe</p>
<p>I must have been no more than fifteen or sixteen years old when I first chanced
upon Winesburg, Ohio. Gripped by these stories and sketches of Sherwood
Anderson’s small-town “grotesques,” I felt that he was
opening for me new depths of experience, touching upon half-buried truths which
nothing in my young life had prepared me for. A New York City boy who never saw
the crops grow or spent time in the small towns that lay sprinkled across
America, I found myself overwhelmed by the scenes of wasted life, wasted
love—was this the “real” America?—that Anderson
sketched in Winesburg. In those days only one other book seemed to offer so
powerful a revelation, and that was Thomas Hardy’s Jude the Obscure.</p>
<p>Several years later, as I was about to go overseas as a soldier, I spent my
last week-end pass on a somewhat quixotic journey to Clyde, Ohio, the town upon
which Winesburg was partly modeled. Clyde looked, I suppose, not very different
from most other American towns, and the few of its residents I tried to engage
in talk about Anderson seemed quite uninterested. This indifference would not
have surprised him; it certainly should not surprise anyone who reads his book.</p>
<p>Once freed from the army, I started to write literary criticism, and in 1951 I
published a critical biography of Anderson. It came shortly after Lionel
Trilling’s influential essay attacking Anderson, an attack from which
Anderson’s reputation would never quite recover. Trilling charged
Anderson with indulging a vaporous sentimentalism, a kind of vague emotional
meandering in stories that lacked social or spiritual solidity. There was a
certain cogency in Trilling’s attack, at least with regard to
Anderson’s inferior work, most of which he wrote after Winesburg, Ohio.
In my book I tried, somewhat awkwardly, to bring together the kinds of judgment
Trilling had made with my still keen affection for the best of Anderson’s
writings. By then, I had read writers more complex, perhaps more distinguished
than Anderson, but his muted stories kept a firm place in my memories, and the
book I wrote might be seen as a gesture of thanks for the light—a glow of
darkness, you might say—that he had brought to me.</p>
<p>Decades passed. I no longer read Anderson, perhaps fearing I might have to
surrender an admiration of youth. (There are some writers one should never
return to.) But now, in the fullness of age, when asked to say a few
introductory words about Anderson and his work, I have again fallen under the
spell of Winesburg, Ohio, again responded to the half-spoken desires, the
flickers of longing that spot its pages. Naturally, I now have some changes of
response: a few of the stories no longer haunt me as once they did, but the
long story “Godliness,” which years ago I considered a failure, I
now see as a quaintly effective account of the way religious fanaticism and
material acquisitiveness can become intertwined in American experience.</p>
<hr />
<p>Sherwood Anderson was born in Ohio in 1876. His childhood and youth in Clyde, a
town with perhaps three thousand souls, were scarred by bouts of poverty, but
he also knew some of the pleasures of pre-industrial American society. The
country was then experiencing what he would later call “a sudden and
almost universal turning of men from the old handicrafts towards our modern
life of machines.” There were still people in Clyde who remembered the
frontier, and like America itself, the town lived by a mixture of diluted
Calvinism and a strong belief in “progress,” Young Sherwood, known
as “Jobby”—the boy always ready to work—showed the kind
of entrepreneurial spirit that Clyde respected: folks expected him to become a
“go-getter,” And for a time he did. Moving to Chicago in his early
twenties, he worked in an advertising agency where he proved adept at turning
out copy. “I create nothing, I boost, I boost,” he said about
himself, even as, on the side, he was trying to write short stories.</p>
<p>In 1904 Anderson married and three years later moved to Elyria, a town forty
miles west of Cleveland, where he established a firm that sold paint. “I
was going to be a rich man…. Next year a bigger house; and after that,
presumably, a country estate.” Later he would say about his years in
Elyria, “I was a good deal of a Babbitt, but never completely one.”
Something drove him to write, perhaps one of those shapeless hungers—a
need for self-expression? a wish to find a more authentic kind of
experience?—that would become a recurrent motif in his fiction.</p>
<p>And then, in 1912, occurred the great turning point in Anderson’s life.
Plainly put, he suffered a nervous breakdown, though in his memoirs he would
elevate this into a moment of liberation in which he abandoned the sterility of
commerce and turned to the rewards of literature. Nor was this, I believe,
merely a deception on Anderson’s part, since the breakdown painful as it
surely was, did help precipitate a basic change in his life. At the age of 36,
he left behind his business and moved to Chicago, becoming one of the
rebellious writers and cultural bohemians in the group that has since come to
be called the “Chicago Renaissance.” Anderson soon adopted the
posture of a free, liberated spirit, and like many writers of the time, he
presented himself as a sardonic critic of American provincialism and
materialism. It was in the freedom of the city, in its readiness to put up with
deviant styles of life, that Anderson found the strength to settle accounts
with—but also to release his affection for—the world of small-town
America. The dream of an unconditional personal freedom, that hazy American
version of utopia, would remain central throughout Anderson’s life and
work. It was an inspiration; it was a delusion.</p>
<p>In 1916 and 1917 Anderson published two novels mostly written in Elyria, Windy
McPherson’s Son and Marching Men, both by now largely forgotten. They
show patches of talent but also a crudity of thought and unsteadiness of
language. No one reading these novels was likely to suppose that its author
could soon produce anything as remarkable as Winesburg, Ohio. Occasionally
there occurs in a writer’s career a sudden, almost mysterious leap of
talent, beyond explanation, perhaps beyond any need for explanation.</p>
<p>In 1915-16 Anderson had begun to write and in 1919 he published the stories
that comprise Winesburg, Ohio, stories that form, in sum, a sort of
loosely-strung episodic novel. The book was an immediate critical success, and
soon Anderson was being ranked as a significant literary figure. In 1921 the
distinguished literary magazine The Dial awarded him its first annual literary
prize of $2,000, the significance of which is perhaps best understood if one
also knows that the second recipient was T. S. Eliot. But Anderson’s
moment of glory was brief, no more than a decade, and sadly, the remaining
years until his death in 1940 were marked by a sharp decline in his literary
standing. Somehow, except for an occasional story like the haunting
“Death in the Woods,” he was unable to repeat or surpass his early
success. Still, about Winesburg, Ohio and a small number of stories like
“The Egg” and “The Man Who Became a Woman” there has
rarely been any critical doubt.</p>
<hr />
<p>No sooner did Winesburg, Ohio make its appearance than a number of critical
labels were fixed on it: the revolt against the village, the espousal of sexual
freedom, the deepening of American realism. Such tags may once have had their
point, but by now they seem dated and stale. The revolt against the village
(about which Anderson was always ambivalent) has faded into history. The
espousal of sexual freedom would soon be exceeded in boldness by other writers.
And as for the effort to place Winesburg, Ohio in a tradition of American
realism, that now seems dubious. Only rarely is the object of Anderson’s
stories social verisimilitude, or the “photographing” of familiar
appearances, in the sense, say, that one might use to describe a novel by
Theodore Dreiser or Sinclair Lewis. Only occasionally, and then with a very
light touch, does Anderson try to fill out the social arrangements of his
imaginary town—although the fact that his stories are set in a
mid-American place like Winesburg does constitute an important formative
condition. You might even say, with only slight overstatement, that what
Anderson is doing in Winesburg, Ohio could be described as
“antirealistic,” fictions notable less for precise locale and
social detail than for a highly personal, even strange vision of American life.
Narrow, intense, almost claustrophobic, the result is a book about extreme
states of being, the collapse of men and women who have lost their psychic
bearings and now hover, at best tolerated, at the edge of the little community
in which they live. It would be a gross mistake, though not one likely to occur
by now, if we were to take Winesburg, Ohio as a social photograph of “the
typical small town” (whatever that might be.) Anderson evokes a depressed
landscape in which lost souls wander about; they make their flitting
appearances mostly in the darkness of night, these stumps and shades of
humanity. This vision has its truth, and at its best it is a terrible if narrow
truth—but it is itself also grotesque, with the tone of the authorial
voice and the mode of composition forming muted signals of the book’s
content. Figures like Dr. Parcival, Kate Swift, and Wash Williams are not, nor
are they meant to be, “fully-rounded” characters such as we can
expect in realistic fiction; they are the shards of life, glimpsed for a
moment, the debris of suffering and defeat. In each story one of them emerges,
shyly or with a false assertiveness, trying to reach out to companionship and
love, driven almost mad by the search for human connection. In the economy of
Winesburg these grotesques matter less in their own right than as agents or
symptoms of that “indefinable hunger” for meaning which is
Anderson’s preoccupation.</p>
<p>Brushing against one another, passing one another in the streets or the fields,
they see bodies and hear voices, but it does not really matter—they are
disconnected, psychically lost. Is this due to the particular circumstances of
small-town America as Anderson saw it at the turn of the century? Or does he
feel that he is sketching an inescapable human condition which makes all of us
bear the burden of loneliness? Alice Hindman in the story
“Adventure” turns her face to the wall and tries “to force
herself to face the fact that many people must live and die alone, even in
Winesburg.” Or especially in Winesburg? Such impressions have been put in
more general terms in Anderson’s only successful novel, Poor White:</p>
<p class="letter">
All men lead their lives behind a wall of misunderstanding they have themselves
built, and most men die in silence and unnoticed behind the walls. Now and then
a man, cut off from his fellows by the peculiarities of his nature, becomes
absorbed in doing something that is personal, useful and beautiful. Word of his
activities is carried over the walls.</p>
<p>These “walls” of misunderstanding are only seldom due to physical
deformities (Wing Biddlebaum in “Hands”) or oppressive social
arrangements (Kate Swift in “The Teacher.”) Misunderstanding,
loneliness, the inability to articulate, are all seen by Anderson as virtually
a root condition, something deeply set in our natures. Nor are these people,
the grotesques, simply to be pitied and dismissed; at some point in their lives
they have known desire, have dreamt of ambition, have hoped for friendship. In
all of them there was once something sweet, “like the twisted little
apples that grow in the orchards in Winesburg.” Now, broken and adrift,
they clutch at some rigid notion or idea, a “truth” which turns out
to bear the stamp of monomania, leaving them helplessly sputtering, desperate
to speak out but unable to. Winesburg, Ohio registers the losses inescapable to
life, and it does so with a deep fraternal sadness, a sympathy casting a mild
glow over the entire book. “Words,” as the American writer Paula
Fox has said, “are nets through which all truth escapes.” Yet what
do we have but words?</p>
<p>They want, these Winesburg grotesques, to unpack their hearts, to release
emotions buried and festering. Wash Williams tries to explain his eccentricity
but hardly can; Louise Bentley “tried to talk but could say
nothing”; Enoch Robinson retreats to a fantasy world, inventing
“his own people to whom he could really talk and to whom he explained the
things he had been unable to explain to living people.”</p>
<p>In his own somber way, Anderson has here touched upon one of the great themes
of American literature, especially Midwestern literature, in the late
nineteenth and early twentieth centuries: the struggle for speech as it entails
a search for the self. Perhaps the central Winesburg story, tracing the basic
movements of the book, is “Paper Pills,” in which the old Doctor
Reefy sits “in his empty office close by a window that was covered with
cobwebs,” writes down some thoughts on slips of paper (“pyramids of
truth,” he calls them) and then stuffs them into his pockets where they
“become round hard balls” soon to be discarded. What Dr.
Reefy’s “truths” may be we never know; Anderson simply
persuades us that to this lonely old man they are utterly precious and thereby
incommunicable, forming a kind of blurred moral signature.</p>
<p>After a time the attentive reader will notice in these stories a recurrent
pattern of theme and incident: the grotesques, gathering up a little courage,
venture out into the streets of Winesburg, often in the dark, there to
establish some initiatory relationship with George Willard, the young reporter
who hasn’t yet lived long enough to become a grotesque. Hesitantly,
fearfully, or with a sputtering incoherent rage, they approach him, pleading
that he listen to their stories in the hope that perhaps they can find some
sort of renewal in his youthful voice. Upon this sensitive and fragile boy they
pour out their desires and frustrations. Dr. Parcival hopes that George Willard
“will write the book I may never get written,” and for Enoch
Robinson, the boy represents “the youthful sadness, young man’s
sadness, the sadness of a growing boy in a village at the year’s end
[which may open] the lips of the old man.”</p>
<p>What the grotesques really need is each other, but their estrangement is so
extreme they cannot establish direct ties—they can only hope for
connection through George Willard. The burden this places on the boy is more
than he can bear. He listens to them attentively, he is sympathetic to their
complaints, but finally he is too absorbed in his own dreams. The grotesques
turn to him because he seems “different”—younger, more open,
not yet hardened—but it is precisely this “difference” that
keeps him from responding as warmly as they want. It is hardly the boy’s
fault; it is simply in the nature of things. For George Willard, the grotesques
form a moment in his education; for the grotesques, their encounters with
George Willard come to seem like a stamp of hopelessness.</p>
<p>The prose Anderson employs in telling these stories may seem at first glance to
be simple: short sentences, a sparse vocabulary, uncomplicated syntax. In
actuality, Anderson developed an artful style in which, following Mark Twain
and preceding Ernest Hemingway, he tried to use American speech as the base of
a tensed rhythmic prose that has an economy and a shapeliness seldom found in
ordinary speech or even oral narration. What Anderson employs here is a
stylized version of the American language, sometimes rising to quite formal
rhetorical patterns and sometimes sinking to a self-conscious mannerism. But at
its best, Anderson’s prose style in Winesburg, Ohio is a supple
instrument, yielding that “low fine music” which he admired so much
in the stories of Turgenev.</p>
<p>One of the worst fates that can befall a writer is that of self-imitation: the
effort later in life, often desperate, to recapture the tones and themes of
youthful beginnings. Something of the sort happened with Anderson’s later
writings. Most critics and readers grew impatient with the work he did after,
say, 1927 or 1928; they felt he was constantly repeating his gestures of
emotional “groping”—what he had called in Winesburg, Ohio the
“indefinable hunger” that prods and torments people. It became the
critical fashion to see Anderson’s “gropings” as a sign of
delayed adolescence, a failure to develop as a writer. Once he wrote a chilling
reply to those who dismissed him in this way: “I don’t think it
matters much, all this calling a man a muddler, a groper, etc…. The very man
who throws such words as these knows in his heart that he is also facing a
wall.” This remark seems to me both dignified and strong, yet it must be
admitted that there was some justice in the negative responses to his later
work. For what characterized it was not so much “groping” as the
imitation of “groping,” the self-caricature of a writer who feels
driven back upon an earlier self that is, alas, no longer available.</p>
<p>But Winesburg, Ohio remains a vital work, fresh and authentic. Most of its
stories are composed in a minor key, a tone of subdued pathos—pathos
marking both the nature and limit of Anderson’s talent. (He spoke of
himself as a “minor writer.”) In a few stories, however, he was
able to reach beyond pathos and to strike a tragic note. The single best story
in Winesburg, Ohio is, I think, “The Untold Lie,” in which the
urgency of choice becomes an outer sign of a tragic element in the human
condition. And in Anderson’s single greatest story, “The
Egg,” which appeared a few years after Winesburg, Ohio, he succeeded in
bringing together a surface of farce with an undertone of tragedy. “The
Egg” is an American masterpiece.</p>
<p>Anderson’s influence upon later American writers, especially those who
wrote short stories, has been enormous. Ernest Hemingway and William Faulkner
both praised him as a writer who brought a new tremor of feeling, a new sense
of introspectiveness to the American short story. As Faulkner put it,
Anderson’s “was the fumbling for exactitude, the exact word and
phrase within the limited scope of a vocabulary controlled and even repressed
by what was in him almost a fetish of simplicity … to seek always to penetrate
to thought’s uttermost end.” And in many younger writers who may
not even be aware of the Anderson influence, you can see touches of his
approach, echoes of his voice.</p>
<p>Writing about the Elizabethan playwright John Ford, the poet Algernon Swinburne
once said: “If he touches you once he takes you, and what he takes he
keeps hold of; his work becomes part of your thought and parcel of your
spiritual furniture forever.” So it is, for me and many others, with
Sherwood Anderson.</p>
<p class="center">
To the memory of my mother,<br/>
EMMA SMITH ANDERSON,</p>
<p class="letter">
whose keen observations on the life about her first awoke in me the hunger to
see beneath the surface of lives, this book is dedicated.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap00"></SPAN>THE TALES AND THE PERSONS</h2>
<h2><SPAN name="chap01"></SPAN>THE BOOK OF THE GROTESQUE</h2>
<p>The writer, an old man with a white mustache, had some difficulty in getting
into bed. The windows of the house in which he lived were high and he wanted to
look at the trees when he awoke in the morning. A carpenter came to fix the bed
so that it would be on a level with the window.</p>
<p>Quite a fuss was made about the matter. The carpenter, who had been a soldier
in the Civil War, came into the writer’s room and sat down to talk of
building a platform for the purpose of raising the bed. The writer had cigars
lying about and the carpenter smoked.</p>
<p>For a time the two men talked of the raising of the bed and then they talked of
other things. The soldier got on the subject of the war. The writer, in fact,
led him to that subject. The carpenter had once been a prisoner in
Andersonville prison and had lost a brother. The brother had died of
starvation, and whenever the carpenter got upon that subject he cried. He, like
the old writer, had a white mustache, and when he cried he puckered up his lips
and the mustache bobbed up and down. The weeping old man with the cigar in his
mouth was ludicrous. The plan the writer had for the raising of his bed was
forgotten and later the carpenter did it in his own way and the writer, who was
past sixty, had to help himself with a chair when he went to bed at night.</p>
<p>In his bed the writer rolled over on his side and lay quite still. For years he
had been beset with notions concerning his heart. He was a hard smoker and his
heart fluttered. The idea had got into his mind that he would some time die
unexpectedly and always when he got into bed he thought of that. It did not
alarm him. The effect in fact was quite a special thing and not easily
explained. It made him more alive, there in bed, than at any other time.
Perfectly still he lay and his body was old and not of much use any more, but
something inside him was altogether young. He was like a pregnant woman, only
that the thing inside him was not a baby but a youth. No, it wasn’t a
youth, it was a woman, young, and wearing a coat of mail like a knight. It is
absurd, you see, to try to tell what was inside the old writer as he lay on his
high bed and listened to the fluttering of his heart. The thing to get at is
what the writer, or the young thing within the writer, was thinking about.</p>
<p>The old writer, like all of the people in the world, had got, during his long
life, a great many notions in his head. He had once been quite handsome and a
number of women had been in love with him. And then, of course, he had known
people, many people, known them in a peculiarly intimate way that was different
from the way in which you and I know people. At least that is what the writer
thought and the thought pleased him. Why quarrel with an old man concerning his
thoughts?</p>
<p>In the bed the writer had a dream that was not a dream. As he grew somewhat
sleepy but was still conscious, figures began to appear before his eyes. He
imagined the young indescribable thing within himself was driving a long
procession of figures before his eyes.</p>
<p>You see the interest in all this lies in the figures that went before the eyes
of the writer. They were all grotesques. All of the men and women the writer
had ever known had become grotesques.</p>
<p>The grotesques were not all horrible. Some were amusing, some almost beautiful,
and one, a woman all drawn out of shape, hurt the old man by her grotesqueness.
When she passed he made a noise like a small dog whimpering. Had you come into
the room you might have supposed the old man had unpleasant dreams or perhaps
indigestion.</p>
<p>For an hour the procession of grotesques passed before the eyes of the old man,
and then, although it was a painful thing to do, he crept out of bed and began
to write. Some one of the grotesques had made a deep impression on his mind and
he wanted to describe it.</p>
<p>At his desk the writer worked for an hour. In the end he wrote a book which he
called “The Book of the Grotesque.” It was never published, but I
saw it once and it made an indelible impression on my mind. The book had one
central thought that is very strange and has always remained with me. By
remembering it I have been able to understand many people and things that I was
never able to understand before. The thought was involved but a simple
statement of it would be something like this:</p>
<p>That in the beginning when the world was young there were a great many thoughts
but no such thing as a truth. Man made the truths himself and each truth was a
composite of a great many vague thoughts. All about in the world were the
truths and they were all beautiful.</p>
<p>The old man had listed hundreds of the truths in his book. I will not try to
tell you of all of them. There was the truth of virginity and the truth of
passion, the truth of wealth and of poverty, of thrift and of profligacy, of
carelessness and abandon. Hundreds and hundreds were the truths and they were
all beautiful.</p>
<p>And then the people came along. Each as he appeared snatched up one of the
truths and some who were quite strong snatched up a dozen of them.</p>
<p>It was the truths that made the people grotesques. The old man had quite an
elaborate theory concerning the matter. It was his notion that the moment one
of the people took one of the truths to himself, called it his truth, and tried
to live his life by it, he became a grotesque and the truth he embraced became
a falsehood.</p>
<p>You can see for yourself how the old man, who had spent all of his life writing
and was filled with words, would write hundreds of pages concerning this
matter. The subject would become so big in his mind that he himself would be in
danger of becoming a grotesque. He didn’t, I suppose, for the same reason
that he never published the book. It was the young thing inside him that saved
the old man.</p>
<p>Concerning the old carpenter who fixed the bed for the writer, I only mentioned
him because he, like many of what are called very common people, became the
nearest thing to what is understandable and lovable of all the grotesques in
the writer’s book.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap02"></SPAN>HANDS</h2>
<p>Upon the half decayed veranda of a small frame house that stood near the edge
of a ravine near the town of Winesburg, Ohio, a fat little old man walked
nervously up and down. Across a long field that had been seeded for clover but
that had produced only a dense crop of yellow mustard weeds, he could see the
public highway along which went a wagon filled with berry pickers returning
from the fields. The berry pickers, youths and maidens, laughed and shouted
boisterously. A boy clad in a blue shirt leaped from the wagon and attempted to
drag after him one of the maidens, who screamed and protested shrilly. The feet
of the boy in the road kicked up a cloud of dust that floated across the face
of the departing sun. Over the long field came a thin girlish voice. “Oh,
you Wing Biddlebaum, comb your hair, it’s falling into your eyes,”
commanded the voice to the man, who was bald and whose nervous little hands
fiddled about the bare white forehead as though arranging a mass of tangled
locks.</p>
<p>Wing Biddlebaum, forever frightened and beset by a ghostly band of doubts, did
not think of himself as in any way a part of the life of the town where he had
lived for twenty years. Among all the people of Winesburg but one had come
close to him. With George Willard, son of Tom Willard, the proprietor of the
New Willard House, he had formed something like a friendship. George Willard
was the reporter on the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i> and sometimes in the evenings he
walked out along the highway to Wing Biddlebaum’s house. Now as the old
man walked up and down on the veranda, his hands moving nervously about, he was
hoping that George Willard would come and spend the evening with him. After the
wagon containing the berry pickers had passed, he went across the field through
the tall mustard weeds and climbing a rail fence peered anxiously along the
road to the town. For a moment he stood thus, rubbing his hands together and
looking up and down the road, and then, fear overcoming him, ran back to walk
again upon the porch on his own house.</p>
<p>In the presence of George Willard, Wing Biddlebaum, who for twenty years had
been the town mystery, lost something of his timidity, and his shadowy
personality, submerged in a sea of doubts, came forth to look at the world.
With the young reporter at his side, he ventured in the light of day into Main
Street or strode up and down on the rickety front porch of his own house,
talking excitedly. The voice that had been low and trembling became shrill and
loud. The bent figure straightened. With a kind of wriggle, like a fish
returned to the brook by the fisherman, Biddlebaum the silent began to talk,
striving to put into words the ideas that had been accumulated by his mind
during long years of silence.</p>
<p>Wing Biddlebaum talked much with his hands. The slender expressive fingers,
forever active, forever striving to conceal themselves in his pockets or behind
his back, came forth and became the piston rods of his machinery of expression.</p>
<p>The story of Wing Biddlebaum is a story of hands. Their restless activity, like
unto the beating of the wings of an imprisoned bird, had given him his name.
Some obscure poet of the town had thought of it. The hands alarmed their owner.
He wanted to keep them hidden away and looked with amazement at the quiet
inexpressive hands of other men who worked beside him in the fields, or passed,
driving sleepy teams on country roads.</p>
<p>When he talked to George Willard, Wing Biddlebaum closed his fists and beat
with them upon a table or on the walls of his house. The action made him more
comfortable. If the desire to talk came to him when the two were walking in the
fields, he sought out a stump or the top board of a fence and with his hands
pounding busily talked with renewed ease.</p>
<p>The story of Wing Biddlebaum’s hands is worth a book in itself.
Sympathetically set forth it would tap many strange, beautiful qualities in
obscure men. It is a job for a poet. In Winesburg the hands had attracted
attention merely because of their activity. With them Wing Biddlebaum had
picked as high as a hundred and forty quarts of strawberries in a day. They
became his distinguishing feature, the source of his fame. Also they made more
grotesque an already grotesque and elusive individuality. Winesburg was proud
of the hands of Wing Biddlebaum in the same spirit in which it was proud of
Banker White’s new stone house and Wesley Moyer’s bay stallion,
Tony Tip, that had won the two-fifteen trot at the fall races in Cleveland.</p>
<p>As for George Willard, he had many times wanted to ask about the hands. At
times an almost overwhelming curiosity had taken hold of him. He felt that
there must be a reason for their strange activity and their inclination to keep
hidden away and only a growing respect for Wing Biddlebaum kept him from
blurting out the questions that were often in his mind.</p>
<p>Once he had been on the point of asking. The two were walking in the fields on
a summer afternoon and had stopped to sit upon a grassy bank. All afternoon
Wing Biddlebaum had talked as one inspired. By a fence he had stopped and
beating like a giant woodpecker upon the top board had shouted at George
Willard, condemning his tendency to be too much influenced by the people about
him, “You are destroying yourself,” he cried. “You have the
inclination to be alone and to dream and you are afraid of dreams. You want to
be like others in town here. You hear them talk and you try to imitate
them.”</p>
<p>On the grassy bank Wing Biddlebaum had tried again to drive his point home. His
voice became soft and reminiscent, and with a sigh of contentment he launched
into a long rambling talk, speaking as one lost in a dream.</p>
<p>Out of the dream Wing Biddlebaum made a picture for George Willard. In the
picture men lived again in a kind of pastoral golden age. Across a green open
country came clean-limbed young men, some afoot, some mounted upon horses. In
crowds the young men came to gather about the feet of an old man who sat
beneath a tree in a tiny garden and who talked to them.</p>
<p>Wing Biddlebaum became wholly inspired. For once he forgot the hands. Slowly
they stole forth and lay upon George Willard’s shoulders. Something new
and bold came into the voice that talked. “You must try to forget all you
have learned,” said the old man. “You must begin to dream. From
this time on you must shut your ears to the roaring of the voices.”</p>
<p>Pausing in his speech, Wing Biddlebaum looked long and earnestly at George
Willard. His eyes glowed. Again he raised the hands to caress the boy and then
a look of horror swept over his face.</p>
<p>With a convulsive movement of his body, Wing Biddlebaum sprang to his feet and
thrust his hands deep into his trousers pockets. Tears came to his eyes.
“I must be getting along home. I can talk no more with you,” he
said nervously.</p>
<p>Without looking back, the old man had hurried down the hillside and across a
meadow, leaving George Willard perplexed and frightened upon the grassy slope.
With a shiver of dread the boy arose and went along the road toward town.
“I’ll not ask him about his hands,” he thought, touched by
the memory of the terror he had seen in the man’s eyes.
“There’s something wrong, but I don’t want to know what it
is. His hands have something to do with his fear of me and of everyone.”</p>
<p>And George Willard was right. Let us look briefly into the story of the hands.
Perhaps our talking of them will arouse the poet who will tell the hidden
wonder story of the influence for which the hands were but fluttering pennants
of promise.</p>
<p>In his youth Wing Biddlebaum had been a school teacher in a town in
Pennsylvania. He was not then known as Wing Biddlebaum, but went by the less
euphonic name of Adolph Myers. As Adolph Myers he was much loved by the boys of
his school.</p>
<p>Adolph Myers was meant by nature to be a teacher of youth. He was one of those
rare, little-understood men who rule by a power so gentle that it passes as a
lovable weakness. In their feeling for the boys under their charge such men are
not unlike the finer sort of women in their love of men.</p>
<p>And yet that is but crudely stated. It needs the poet there. With the boys of
his school, Adolph Myers had walked in the evening or had sat talking until
dusk upon the schoolhouse steps lost in a kind of dream. Here and there went
his hands, caressing the shoulders of the boys, playing about the tousled
heads. As he talked his voice became soft and musical. There was a caress in
that also. In a way the voice and the hands, the stroking of the shoulders and
the touching of the hair were a part of the schoolmaster’s effort to
carry a dream into the young minds. By the caress that was in his fingers he
expressed himself. He was one of those men in whom the force that creates life
is diffused, not centralized. Under the caress of his hands doubt and disbelief
went out of the minds of the boys and they began also to dream.</p>
<p>And then the tragedy. A half-witted boy of the school became enamored of the
young master. In his bed at night he imagined unspeakable things and in the
morning went forth to tell his dreams as facts. Strange, hideous accusations
fell from his loosehung lips. Through the Pennsylvania town went a shiver.
Hidden, shadowy doubts that had been in men’s minds concerning Adolph
Myers were galvanized into beliefs.</p>
<p>The tragedy did not linger. Trembling lads were jerked out of bed and
questioned. “He put his arms about me,” said one. “His
fingers were always playing in my hair,” said another.</p>
<p>One afternoon a man of the town, Henry Bradford, who kept a saloon, came to the
schoolhouse door. Calling Adolph Myers into the school yard he began to beat
him with his fists. As his hard knuckles beat down into the frightened face of
the school-master, his wrath became more and more terrible. Screaming with
dismay, the children ran here and there like disturbed insects.
“I’ll teach you to put your hands on my boy, you beast,”
roared the saloon keeper, who, tired of beating the master, had begun to kick
him about the yard.</p>
<p>Adolph Myers was driven from the Pennsylvania town in the night. With lanterns
in their hands a dozen men came to the door of the house where he lived alone
and commanded that he dress and come forth. It was raining and one of the men
had a rope in his hands. They had intended to hang the school-master, but
something in his figure, so small, white, and pitiful, touched their hearts and
they let him escape. As he ran away into the darkness they repented of their
weakness and ran after him, swearing and throwing sticks and great balls of
soft mud at the figure that screamed and ran faster and faster into the
darkness.</p>
<p>For twenty years Adolph Myers had lived alone in Winesburg. He was but forty
but looked sixty-five. The name of Biddlebaum he got from a box of goods seen
at a freight station as he hurried through an eastern Ohio town. He had an aunt
in Winesburg, a black-toothed old woman who raised chickens, and with her he
lived until she died. He had been ill for a year after the experience in
Pennsylvania, and after his recovery worked as a day laborer in the fields,
going timidly about and striving to conceal his hands. Although he did not
understand what had happened he felt that the hands must be to blame. Again and
again the fathers of the boys had talked of the hands. “Keep your hands
to yourself,” the saloon keeper had roared, dancing, with fury in the
schoolhouse yard.</p>
<p>Upon the veranda of his house by the ravine, Wing Biddlebaum continued to walk
up and down until the sun had disappeared and the road beyond the field was
lost in the grey shadows. Going into his house he cut slices of bread and
spread honey upon them. When the rumble of the evening train that took away the
express cars loaded with the day’s harvest of berries had passed and
restored the silence of the summer night, he went again to walk upon the
veranda. In the darkness he could not see the hands and they became quiet.
Although he still hungered for the presence of the boy, who was the medium
through which he expressed his love of man, the hunger became again a part of
his loneliness and his waiting. Lighting a lamp, Wing Biddlebaum washed the few
dishes soiled by his simple meal and, setting up a folding cot by the screen
door that led to the porch, prepared to undress for the night. A few stray
white bread crumbs lay on the cleanly washed floor by the table; putting the
lamp upon a low stool he began to pick up the crumbs, carrying them to his
mouth one by one with unbelievable rapidity. In the dense blotch of light
beneath the table, the kneeling figure looked like a priest engaged in some
service of his church. The nervous expressive fingers, flashing in and out of
the light, might well have been mistaken for the fingers of the devotee going
swiftly through decade after decade of his rosary.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap03"></SPAN>PAPER PILLS</h2>
<p>He was an old man with a white beard and huge nose and hands. Long before the
time during which we will know him, he was a doctor and drove a jaded white
horse from house to house through the streets of Winesburg. Later he married a
girl who had money. She had been left a large fertile farm when her father
died. The girl was quiet, tall, and dark, and to many people she seemed very
beautiful. Everyone in Winesburg wondered why she married the doctor. Within a
year after the marriage she died.</p>
<p>The knuckles of the doctor’s hands were extraordinarily large. When the
hands were closed they looked like clusters of unpainted wooden balls as large
as walnuts fastened together by steel rods. He smoked a cob pipe and after his
wife’s death sat all day in his empty office close by a window that was
covered with cobwebs. He never opened the window. Once on a hot day in August
he tried but found it stuck fast and after that he forgot all about it.</p>
<p>Winesburg had forgotten the old man, but in Doctor Reefy there were the seeds
of something very fine. Alone in his musty office in the Heffner Block above
the Paris Dry Goods Company’s store, he worked ceaselessly, building up
something that he himself destroyed. Little pyramids of truth he erected and
after erecting knocked them down again that he might have the truths to erect
other pyramids.</p>
<p>Doctor Reefy was a tall man who had worn one suit of clothes for ten years. It
was frayed at the sleeves and little holes had appeared at the knees and
elbows. In the office he wore also a linen duster with huge pockets into which
he continually stuffed scraps of paper. After some weeks the scraps of paper
became little hard round balls, and when the pockets were filled he dumped them
out upon the floor. For ten years he had but one friend, another old man named
John Spaniard who owned a tree nursery. Sometimes, in a playful mood, old
Doctor Reefy took from his pockets a handful of the paper balls and threw them
at the nursery man. “That is to confound you, you blathering old
sentimentalist,” he cried, shaking with laughter.</p>
<p>The story of Doctor Reefy and his courtship of the tall dark girl who became
his wife and left her money to him is a very curious story. It is delicious,
like the twisted little apples that grow in the orchards of Winesburg. In the
fall one walks in the orchards and the ground is hard with frost underfoot. The
apples have been taken from the trees by the pickers. They have been put in
barrels and shipped to the cities where they will be eaten in apartments that
are filled with books, magazines, furniture, and people. On the trees are only
a few gnarled apples that the pickers have rejected. They look like the
knuckles of Doctor Reefy’s hands. One nibbles at them and they are
delicious. Into a little round place at the side of the apple has been gathered
all of its sweetness. One runs from tree to tree over the frosted ground
picking the gnarled, twisted apples and filling his pockets with them. Only the
few know the sweetness of the twisted apples.</p>
<p>The girl and Doctor Reefy began their courtship on a summer afternoon. He was
forty-five then and already he had begun the practice of filling his pockets
with the scraps of paper that became hard balls and were thrown away. The habit
had been formed as he sat in his buggy behind the jaded white horse and went
slowly along country roads. On the papers were written thoughts, ends of
thoughts, beginnings of thoughts.</p>
<p>One by one the mind of Doctor Reefy had made the thoughts. Out of many of them
he formed a truth that arose gigantic in his mind. The truth clouded the world.
It became terrible and then faded away and the little thoughts began again.</p>
<p>The tall dark girl came to see Doctor Reefy because she was in the family way
and had become frightened. She was in that condition because of a series of
circumstances also curious.</p>
<p>The death of her father and mother and the rich acres of land that had come
down to her had set a train of suitors on her heels. For two years she saw
suitors almost every evening. Except two they were all alike. They talked to
her of passion and there was a strained eager quality in their voices and in
their eyes when they looked at her. The two who were different were much unlike
each other. One of them, a slender young man with white hands, the son of a
jeweler in Winesburg, talked continually of virginity. When he was with her he
was never off the subject. The other, a black-haired boy with large ears, said
nothing at all but always managed to get her into the darkness, where he began
to kiss her.</p>
<p>For a time the tall dark girl thought she would marry the jeweler’s son.
For hours she sat in silence listening as he talked to her and then she began
to be afraid of something. Beneath his talk of virginity she began to think
there was a lust greater than in all the others. At times it seemed to her that
as he talked he was holding her body in his hands. She imagined him turning it
slowly about in the white hands and staring at it. At night she dreamed that he
had bitten into her body and that his jaws were dripping. She had the dream
three times, then she became in the family way to the one who said nothing at
all but who in the moment of his passion actually did bite her shoulder so that
for days the marks of his teeth showed.</p>
<p>After the tall dark girl came to know Doctor Reefy it seemed to her that she
never wanted to leave him again. She went into his office one morning and
without her saying anything he seemed to know what had happened to her.</p>
<p>In the office of the doctor there was a woman, the wife of the man who kept the
bookstore in Winesburg. Like all old-fashioned country practitioners, Doctor
Reefy pulled teeth, and the woman who waited held a handkerchief to her teeth
and groaned. Her husband was with her and when the tooth was taken out they
both screamed and blood ran down on the woman’s white dress. The tall
dark girl did not pay any attention. When the woman and the man had gone the
doctor smiled. “I will take you driving into the country with me,”
he said.</p>
<p>For several weeks the tall dark girl and the doctor were together almost every
day. The condition that had brought her to him passed in an illness, but she
was like one who has discovered the sweetness of the twisted apples, she could
not get her mind fixed again upon the round perfect fruit that is eaten in the
city apartments. In the fall after the beginning of her acquaintanceship with
him she married Doctor Reefy and in the following spring she died. During the
winter he read to her all of the odds and ends of thoughts he had scribbled on
the bits of paper. After he had read them he laughed and stuffed them away in
his pockets to become round hard balls.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap04"></SPAN>MOTHER</h2>
<p>Elizabeth Willard, the mother of George Willard, was tall and gaunt and her
face was marked with smallpox scars. Although she was but forty-five, some
obscure disease had taken the fire out of her figure. Listlessly she went about
the disorderly old hotel looking at the faded wall-paper and the ragged carpets
and, when she was able to be about, doing the work of a chambermaid among beds
soiled by the slumbers of fat traveling men. Her husband, Tom Willard, a
slender, graceful man with square shoulders, a quick military step, and a black
mustache trained to turn sharply up at the ends, tried to put the wife out of
his mind. The presence of the tall ghostly figure, moving slowly through the
halls, he took as a reproach to himself. When he thought of her he grew angry
and swore. The hotel was unprofitable and forever on the edge of failure and he
wished himself out of it. He thought of the old house and the woman who lived
there with him as things defeated and done for. The hotel in which he had begun
life so hopefully was now a mere ghost of what a hotel should be. As he went
spruce and business-like through the streets of Winesburg, he sometimes stopped
and turned quickly about as though fearing that the spirit of the hotel and of
the woman would follow him even into the streets. “Damn such a life, damn
it!” he sputtered aimlessly.</p>
<p>Tom Willard had a passion for village politics and for years had been the
leading Democrat in a strongly Republican community. Some day, he told himself,
the tide of things political will turn in my favor and the years of ineffectual
service count big in the bestowal of rewards. He dreamed of going to Congress
and even of becoming governor. Once when a younger member of the party arose at
a political conference and began to boast of his faithful service, Tom Willard
grew white with fury. “Shut up, you,” he roared, glaring about.
“What do you know of service? What are you but a boy? Look at what
I’ve done here! I was a Democrat here in Winesburg when it was a crime to
be a Democrat. In the old days they fairly hunted us with guns.”</p>
<p>Between Elizabeth and her one son George there was a deep unexpressed bond of
sympathy, based on a girlhood dream that had long ago died. In the son’s
presence she was timid and reserved, but sometimes while he hurried about town
intent upon his duties as a reporter, she went into his room and closing the
door knelt by a little desk, made of a kitchen table, that sat near a window.
In the room by the desk she went through a ceremony that was half a prayer,
half a demand, addressed to the skies. In the boyish figure she yearned to see
something half forgotten that had once been a part of herself recreated. The
prayer concerned that. “Even though I die, I will in some way keep defeat
from you,” she cried, and so deep was her determination that her whole
body shook. Her eyes glowed and she clenched her fists. “If I am dead and
see him becoming a meaningless drab figure like myself, I will come
back,” she declared. “I ask God now to give me that privilege. I
demand it. I will pay for it. God may beat me with his fists. I will take any
blow that may befall if but this my boy be allowed to express something for us
both.” Pausing uncertainly, the woman stared about the boy’s room.
“And do not let him become smart and successful either,” she added
vaguely.</p>
<p>The communion between George Willard and his mother was outwardly a formal
thing without meaning. When she was ill and sat by the window in her room he
sometimes went in the evening to make her a visit. They sat by a window that
looked over the roof of a small frame building into Main Street. By turning
their heads they could see through another window, along an alleyway that ran
behind the Main Street stores and into the back door of Abner Groff’s
bakery. Sometimes as they sat thus a picture of village life presented itself
to them. At the back door of his shop appeared Abner Groff with a stick or an
empty milk bottle in his hand. For a long time there was a feud between the
baker and a grey cat that belonged to Sylvester West, the druggist. The boy and
his mother saw the cat creep into the door of the bakery and presently emerge
followed by the baker, who swore and waved his arms about. The baker’s
eyes were small and red and his black hair and beard were filled with flour
dust. Sometimes he was so angry that, although the cat had disappeared, he
hurled sticks, bits of broken glass, and even some of the tools of his trade
about. Once he broke a window at the back of Sinning’s Hardware Store. In
the alley the grey cat crouched behind barrels filled with torn paper and
broken bottles above which flew a black swarm of flies. Once when she was
alone, and after watching a prolonged and ineffectual outburst on the part of
the baker, Elizabeth Willard put her head down on her long white hands and
wept. After that she did not look along the alleyway any more, but tried to
forget the contest between the bearded man and the cat. It seemed like a
rehearsal of her own life, terrible in its vividness.</p>
<p>In the evening when the son sat in the room with his mother, the silence made
them both feel awkward. Darkness came on and the evening train came in at the
station. In the street below feet tramped up and down upon a board sidewalk. In
the station yard, after the evening train had gone, there was a heavy silence.
Perhaps Skinner Leason, the express agent, moved a truck the length of the
station platform. Over on Main Street sounded a man’s voice, laughing.
The door of the express office banged. George Willard arose and crossing the
room fumbled for the doorknob. Sometimes he knocked against a chair, making it
scrape along the floor. By the window sat the sick woman, perfectly still,
listless. Her long hands, white and bloodless, could be seen drooping over the
ends of the arms of the chair. “I think you had better be out among the
boys. You are too much indoors,” she said, striving to relieve the
embarrassment of the departure. “I thought I would take a walk,”
replied George Willard, who felt awkward and confused.</p>
<p>One evening in July, when the transient guests who made the New Willard House
their temporary home had become scarce, and the hallways, lighted only by
kerosene lamps turned low, were plunged in gloom, Elizabeth Willard had an
adventure. She had been ill in bed for several days and her son had not come to
visit her. She was alarmed. The feeble blaze of life that remained in her body
was blown into a flame by her anxiety and she crept out of bed, dressed and
hurried along the hallway toward her son’s room, shaking with exaggerated
fears. As she went along she steadied herself with her hand, slipped along the
papered walls of the hall and breathed with difficulty. The air whistled
through her teeth. As she hurried forward she thought how foolish she was.
“He is concerned with boyish affairs,” she told herself.
“Perhaps he has now begun to walk about in the evening with girls.”</p>
<p>Elizabeth Willard had a dread of being seen by guests in the hotel that had
once belonged to her father and the ownership of which still stood recorded in
her name in the county courthouse. The hotel was continually losing patronage
because of its shabbiness and she thought of herself as also shabby. Her own
room was in an obscure corner and when she felt able to work she voluntarily
worked among the beds, preferring the labor that could be done when the guests
were abroad seeking trade among the merchants of Winesburg.</p>
<p>By the door of her son’s room the mother knelt upon the floor and
listened for some sound from within. When she heard the boy moving about and
talking in low tones a smile came to her lips. George Willard had a habit of
talking aloud to himself and to hear him doing so had always given his mother a
peculiar pleasure. The habit in him, she felt, strengthened the secret bond
that existed between them. A thousand times she had whispered to herself of the
matter. “He is groping about, trying to find himself,” she thought.
“He is not a dull clod, all words and smartness. Within him there is a
secret something that is striving to grow. It is the thing I let be killed in
myself.”</p>
<p>In the darkness in the hallway by the door the sick woman arose and started
again toward her own room. She was afraid that the door would open and the boy
come upon her. When she had reached a safe distance and was about to turn a
corner into a second hallway she stopped and bracing herself with her hands
waited, thinking to shake off a trembling fit of weakness that had come upon
her. The presence of the boy in the room had made her happy. In her bed, during
the long hours alone, the little fears that had visited her had become giants.
Now they were all gone. “When I get back to my room I shall sleep,”
she murmured gratefully.</p>
<p>But Elizabeth Willard was not to return to her bed and to sleep. As she stood
trembling in the darkness the door of her son’s room opened and the
boy’s father, Tom Willard, stepped out. In the light that steamed out at
the door he stood with the knob in his hand and talked. What he said infuriated
the woman.</p>
<p>Tom Willard was ambitious for his son. He had always thought of himself as a
successful man, although nothing he had ever done had turned out successfully.
However, when he was out of sight of the New Willard House and had no fear of
coming upon his wife, he swaggered and began to dramatize himself as one of the
chief men of the town. He wanted his son to succeed. He it was who had secured
for the boy the position on the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i>. Now, with a ring of
earnestness in his voice, he was advising concerning some course of conduct.
“I tell you what, George, you’ve got to wake up,” he said
sharply. “Will Henderson has spoken to me three times concerning the
matter. He says you go along for hours not hearing when you are spoken to and
acting like a gawky girl. What ails you?” Tom Willard laughed
good-naturedly. “Well, I guess you’ll get over it,” he said.
“I told Will that. You’re not a fool and you’re not a woman.
You’re Tom Willard’s son and you’ll wake up. I’m not
afraid. What you say clears things up. If being a newspaper man had put the
notion of becoming a writer into your mind that’s all right. Only I guess
you’ll have to wake up to do that too, eh?”</p>
<p>Tom Willard went briskly along the hallway and down a flight of stairs to the
office. The woman in the darkness could hear him laughing and talking with a
guest who was striving to wear away a dull evening by dozing in a chair by the
office door. She returned to the door of her son’s room. The weakness had
passed from her body as by a miracle and she stepped boldly along. A thousand
ideas raced through her head. When she heard the scraping of a chair and the
sound of a pen scratching upon paper, she again turned and went back along the
hallway to her own room.</p>
<p>A definite determination had come into the mind of the defeated wife of the
Winesburg hotel keeper. The determination was the result of long years of quiet
and rather ineffectual thinking. “Now,” she told herself, “I
will act. There is something threatening my boy and I will ward it off.”
The fact that the conversation between Tom Willard and his son had been rather
quiet and natural, as though an understanding existed between them, maddened
her. Although for years she had hated her husband, her hatred had always before
been a quite impersonal thing. He had been merely a part of something else that
she hated. Now, and by the few words at the door, he had become the thing
personified. In the darkness of her own room she clenched her fists and glared
about. Going to a cloth bag that hung on a nail by the wall she took out a long
pair of sewing scissors and held them in her hand like a dagger. “I will
stab him,” she said aloud. “He has chosen to be the voice of evil
and I will kill him. When I have killed him something will snap within myself
and I will die also. It will be a release for all of us.”</p>
<p>In her girlhood and before her marriage with Tom Willard, Elizabeth had borne a
somewhat shaky reputation in Winesburg. For years she had been what is called
“stage-struck” and had paraded through the streets with traveling
men guests at her father’s hotel, wearing loud clothes and urging them to
tell her of life in the cities out of which they had come. Once she startled
the town by putting on men’s clothes and riding a bicycle down Main
Street.</p>
<p>In her own mind the tall dark girl had been in those days much confused. A
great restlessness was in her and it expressed itself in two ways. First there
was an uneasy desire for change, for some big definite movement to her life. It
was this feeling that had turned her mind to the stage. She dreamed of joining
some company and wandering over the world, seeing always new faces and giving
something out of herself to all people. Sometimes at night she was quite beside
herself with the thought, but when she tried to talk of the matter to the
members of the theatrical companies that came to Winesburg and stopped at her
father’s hotel, she got nowhere. They did not seem to know what she
meant, or if she did get something of her passion expressed, they only laughed.
“It’s not like that,” they said. “It’s as dull
and uninteresting as this here. Nothing comes of it.”</p>
<p>With the traveling men when she walked about with them, and later with Tom
Willard, it was quite different. Always they seemed to understand and
sympathize with her. On the side streets of the village, in the darkness under
the trees, they took hold of her hand and she thought that something
unexpressed in herself came forth and became a part of an unexpressed something
in them.</p>
<p>And then there was the second expression of her restlessness. When that came
she felt for a time released and happy. She did not blame the men who walked
with her and later she did not blame Tom Willard. It was always the same,
beginning with kisses and ending, after strange wild emotions, with peace and
then sobbing repentance. When she sobbed she put her hand upon the face of the
man and had always the same thought. Even though he were large and bearded she
thought he had become suddenly a little boy. She wondered why he did not sob
also.</p>
<p>In her room, tucked away in a corner of the old Willard House, Elizabeth
Willard lighted a lamp and put it on a dressing table that stood by the door. A
thought had come into her mind and she went to a closet and brought out a small
square box and set it on the table. The box contained material for make-up and
had been left with other things by a theatrical company that had once been
stranded in Winesburg. Elizabeth Willard had decided that she would be
beautiful. Her hair was still black and there was a great mass of it braided
and coiled about her head. The scene that was to take place in the office below
began to grow in her mind. No ghostly worn-out figure should confront Tom
Willard, but something quite unexpected and startling. Tall and with dusky
cheeks and hair that fell in a mass from her shoulders, a figure should come
striding down the stairway before the startled loungers in the hotel office.
The figure would be silent—it would be swift and terrible. As a tigress
whose cub had been threatened would she appear, coming out of the shadows,
stealing noiselessly along and holding the long wicked scissors in her hand.</p>
<p>With a little broken sob in her throat, Elizabeth Willard blew out the light
that stood upon the table and stood weak and trembling in the darkness. The
strength that had been as a miracle in her body left and she half reeled across
the floor, clutching at the back of the chair in which she had spent so many
long days staring out over the tin roofs into the main street of Winesburg. In
the hallway there was the sound of footsteps and George Willard came in at the
door. Sitting in a chair beside his mother he began to talk. “I’m
going to get out of here,” he said. “I don’t know where I
shall go or what I shall do but I am going away.”</p>
<p>The woman in the chair waited and trembled. An impulse came to her. “I
suppose you had better wake up,” she said. “You think that? You
will go to the city and make money, eh? It will be better for you, you think,
to be a business man, to be brisk and smart and alive?” She waited and
trembled.</p>
<p>The son shook his head. “I suppose I can’t make you understand, but
oh, I wish I could,” he said earnestly. “I can’t even talk to
father about it. I don’t try. There isn’t any use. I don’t
know what I shall do. I just want to go away and look at people and
think.”</p>
<p>Silence fell upon the room where the boy and woman sat together. Again, as on
the other evenings, they were embarrassed. After a time the boy tried again to
talk. “I suppose it won’t be for a year or two but I’ve been
thinking about it,” he said, rising and going toward the door.
“Something father said makes it sure that I shall have to go away.”
He fumbled with the doorknob. In the room the silence became unbearable to the
woman. She wanted to cry out with joy because of the words that had come from
the lips of her son, but the expression of joy had become impossible to her.
“I think you had better go out among the boys. You are too much
indoors,” she said. “I thought I would go for a little walk,”
replied the son stepping awkwardly out of the room and closing the door.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap05"></SPAN>THE PHILOSOPHER</h2>
<p>Doctor Parcival was a large man with a drooping mouth covered by a yellow
mustache. He always wore a dirty white waistcoat out of the pockets of which
protruded a number of the kind of black cigars known as stogies. His teeth were
black and irregular and there was something strange about his eyes. The lid of
the left eye twitched; it fell down and snapped up; it was exactly as though
the lid of the eye were a window shade and someone stood inside the
doctor’s head playing with the cord.</p>
<p>Doctor Parcival had a liking for the boy, George Willard. It began when George
had been working for a year on the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i> and the
acquaintanceship was entirely a matter of the doctor’s own making.</p>
<p>In the late afternoon Will Henderson, owner and editor of the <i>Eagle</i>,
went over to Tom Willy’s saloon. Along an alleyway he went and slipping
in at the back door of the saloon began drinking a drink made of a combination
of sloe gin and soda water. Will Henderson was a sensualist and had reached the
age of forty-five. He imagined the gin renewed the youth in him. Like most
sensualists he enjoyed talking of women, and for an hour he lingered about
gossiping with Tom Willy. The saloon keeper was a short, broad-shouldered man
with peculiarly marked hands. That flaming kind of birthmark that sometimes
paints with red the faces of men and women had touched with red Tom
Willy’s fingers and the backs of his hands. As he stood by the bar
talking to Will Henderson he rubbed the hands together. As he grew more and
more excited the red of his fingers deepened. It was as though the hands had
been dipped in blood that had dried and faded.</p>
<p>As Will Henderson stood at the bar looking at the red hands and talking of
women, his assistant, George Willard, sat in the office of the <i>Winesburg
Eagle</i> and listened to the talk of Doctor Parcival.</p>
<p>Doctor Parcival appeared immediately after Will Henderson had disappeared. One
might have supposed that the doctor had been watching from his office window
and had seen the editor going along the alleyway. Coming in at the front door
and finding himself a chair, he lighted one of the stogies and crossing his
legs began to talk. He seemed intent upon convincing the boy of the
advisability of adopting a line of conduct that he was himself unable to
define.</p>
<p>“If you have your eyes open you will see that although I call myself a
doctor I have mighty few patients,” he began. “There is a reason
for that. It is not an accident and it is not because I do not know as much of
medicine as anyone here. I do not want patients. The reason, you see, does not
appear on the surface. It lies in fact in my character, which has, if you think
about it, many strange turns. Why I want to talk to you of the matter I
don’t know. I might keep still and get more credit in your eyes. I have a
desire to make you admire me, that’s a fact. I don’t know why.
That’s why I talk. It’s very amusing, eh?”</p>
<p>Sometimes the doctor launched into long tales concerning himself. To the boy
the tales were very real and full of meaning. He began to admire the fat
unclean-looking man and, in the afternoon when Will Henderson had gone, looked
forward with keen interest to the doctor’s coming.</p>
<p>Doctor Parcival had been in Winesburg about five years. He came from Chicago
and when he arrived was drunk and got into a fight with Albert Longworth, the
baggageman. The fight concerned a trunk and ended by the doctor’s being
escorted to the village lockup. When he was released he rented a room above a
shoe-repairing shop at the lower end of Main Street and put out the sign that
announced himself as a doctor. Although he had but few patients and these of
the poorer sort who were unable to pay, he seemed to have plenty of money for
his needs. He slept in the office that was unspeakably dirty and dined at Biff
Carter’s lunch room in a small frame building opposite the railroad
station. In the summer the lunch room was filled with flies and Biff
Carter’s white apron was more dirty than his floor. Doctor Parcival did
not mind. Into the lunch room he stalked and deposited twenty cents upon the
counter. “Feed me what you wish for that,” he said laughing.
“Use up food that you wouldn’t otherwise sell. It makes no
difference to me. I am a man of distinction, you see. Why should I concern
myself with what I eat.”</p>
<p>The tales that Doctor Parcival told George Willard began nowhere and ended
nowhere. Sometimes the boy thought they must all be inventions, a pack of lies.
And then again he was convinced that they contained the very essence of truth.</p>
<p>“I was a reporter like you here,” Doctor Parcival began. “It
was in a town in Iowa—or was it in Illinois? I don’t remember and
anyway it makes no difference. Perhaps I am trying to conceal my identity and
don’t want to be very definite. Have you ever thought it strange that I
have money for my needs although I do nothing? I may have stolen a great sum of
money or been involved in a murder before I came here. There is food for
thought in that, eh? If you were a really smart newspaper reporter you would
look me up. In Chicago there was a Doctor Cronin who was murdered. Have you
heard of that? Some men murdered him and put him in a trunk. In the early
morning they hauled the trunk across the city. It sat on the back of an express
wagon and they were on the seat as unconcerned as anything. Along they went
through quiet streets where everyone was asleep. The sun was just coming up
over the lake. Funny, eh—just to think of them smoking pipes and
chattering as they drove along as unconcerned as I am now. Perhaps I was one of
those men. That would be a strange turn of things, now wouldn’t it,
eh?” Again Doctor Parcival began his tale: “Well, anyway there I
was, a reporter on a paper just as you are here, running about and getting
little items to print. My mother was poor. She took in washing. Her dream was
to make me a Presbyterian minister and I was studying with that end in view.</p>
<p>“My father had been insane for a number of years. He was in an asylum
over at Dayton, Ohio. There you see I have let it slip out! All of this took
place in Ohio, right here in Ohio. There is a clew if you ever get the notion
of looking me up.</p>
<p>“I was going to tell you of my brother. That’s the object of all
this. That’s what I’m getting at. My brother was a railroad painter
and had a job on the Big Four. You know that road runs through Ohio here. With
other men he lived in a box car and away they went from town to town painting
the railroad property-switches, crossing gates, bridges, and stations.</p>
<p>“The Big Four paints its stations a nasty orange color. How I hated that
color! My brother was always covered with it. On pay days he used to get drunk
and come home wearing his paint-covered clothes and bringing his money with
him. He did not give it to mother but laid it in a pile on our kitchen table.</p>
<p>“About the house he went in the clothes covered with the nasty orange
colored paint. I can see the picture. My mother, who was small and had red,
sad-looking eyes, would come into the house from a little shed at the back.
That’s where she spent her time over the washtub scrubbing people’s
dirty clothes. In she would come and stand by the table, rubbing her eyes with
her apron that was covered with soap-suds.</p>
<p>“‘Don’t touch it! Don’t you dare touch that
money,’ my brother roared, and then he himself took five or ten dollars
and went tramping off to the saloons. When he had spent what he had taken he
came back for more. He never gave my mother any money at all but stayed about
until he had spent it all, a little at a time. Then he went back to his job
with the painting crew on the railroad. After he had gone things began to
arrive at our house, groceries and such things. Sometimes there would be a
dress for mother or a pair of shoes for me.</p>
<p>“Strange, eh? My mother loved my brother much more than she did me,
although he never said a kind word to either of us and always raved up and down
threatening us if we dared so much as touch the money that sometimes lay on the
table three days.</p>
<p>“We got along pretty well. I studied to be a minister and prayed. I was a
regular ass about saying prayers. You should have heard me. When my father died
I prayed all night, just as I did sometimes when my brother was in town
drinking and going about buying the things for us. In the evening after supper
I knelt by the table where the money lay and prayed for hours. When no one was
looking I stole a dollar or two and put it in my pocket. That makes me laugh
now but then it was terrible. It was on my mind all the time. I got six dollars
a week from my job on the paper and always took it straight home to mother. The
few dollars I stole from my brother’s pile I spent on myself, you know,
for trifles, candy and cigarettes and such things.</p>
<p>“When my father died at the asylum over at Dayton, I went over there. I
borrowed some money from the man for whom I worked and went on the train at
night. It was raining. In the asylum they treated me as though I were a king.</p>
<p>“The men who had jobs in the asylum had found out I was a newspaper
reporter. That made them afraid. There had been some negligence, some
carelessness, you see, when father was ill. They thought perhaps I would write
it up in the paper and make a fuss. I never intended to do anything of the
kind.</p>
<p>“Anyway, in I went to the room where my father lay dead and blessed the
dead body. I wonder what put that notion into my head. Wouldn’t my
brother, the painter, have laughed, though. There I stood over the dead body
and spread out my hands. The superintendent of the asylum and some of his
helpers came in and stood about looking sheepish. It was very amusing. I spread
out my hands and said, ‘Let peace brood over this carcass.’
That’s what I said.”</p>
<p>Jumping to his feet and breaking off the tale, Doctor Parcival began to walk up
and down in the office of the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i> where George Willard sat
listening. He was awkward and, as the office was small, continually knocked
against things. “What a fool I am to be talking,” he said.
“That is not my object in coming here and forcing my acquaintanceship
upon you. I have something else in mind. You are a reporter just as I was once
and you have attracted my attention. You may end by becoming just such another
fool. I want to warn you and keep on warning you. That’s why I seek you
out.”</p>
<p>Doctor Parcival began talking of George Willard’s attitude toward men. It
seemed to the boy that the man had but one object in view, to make everyone
seem despicable. “I want to fill you with hatred and contempt so that you
will be a superior being,” he declared. “Look at my brother. There
was a fellow, eh? He despised everyone, you see. You have no idea with what
contempt he looked upon mother and me. And was he not our superior? You know he
was. You have not seen him and yet I have made you feel that. I have given you
a sense of it. He is dead. Once when he was drunk he lay down on the tracks and
the car in which he lived with the other painters ran over him.”</p>
<hr />
<p>One day in August Doctor Parcival had an adventure in Winesburg. For a month
George Willard had been going each morning to spend an hour in the
doctor’s office. The visits came about through a desire on the part of
the doctor to read to the boy from the pages of a book he was in the process of
writing. To write the book Doctor Parcival declared was the object of his
coming to Winesburg to live.</p>
<p>On the morning in August before the coming of the boy, an incident had happened
in the doctor’s office. There had been an accident on Main Street. A team
of horses had been frightened by a train and had run away. A little girl, the
daughter of a farmer, had been thrown from a buggy and killed.</p>
<p>On Main Street everyone had become excited and a cry for doctors had gone up.
All three of the active practitioners of the town had come quickly but had
found the child dead. From the crowd someone had run to the office of Doctor
Parcival who had bluntly refused to go down out of his office to the dead
child. The useless cruelty of his refusal had passed unnoticed. Indeed, the man
who had come up the stairway to summon him had hurried away without hearing the
refusal.</p>
<p>All of this, Doctor Parcival did not know and when George Willard came to his
office he found the man shaking with terror. “What I have done will
arouse the people of this town,” he declared excitedly. “Do I not
know human nature? Do I not know what will happen? Word of my refusal will be
whispered about. Presently men will get together in groups and talk of it. They
will come here. We will quarrel and there will be talk of hanging. Then they
will come again bearing a rope in their hands.”</p>
<p>Doctor Parcival shook with fright. “I have a presentiment,” he
declared emphatically. “It may be that what I am talking about will not
occur this morning. It may be put off until tonight but I will be hanged.
Everyone will get excited. I will be hanged to a lamp-post on Main
Street.”</p>
<p>Going to the door of his dirty office, Doctor Parcival looked timidly down the
stairway leading to the street. When he returned the fright that had been in
his eyes was beginning to be replaced by doubt. Coming on tiptoe across the
room he tapped George Willard on the shoulder. “If not now,
sometime,” he whispered, shaking his head. “In the end I will be
crucified, uselessly crucified.”</p>
<p>Doctor Parcival began to plead with George Willard. “You must pay
attention to me,” he urged. “If something happens perhaps you will
be able to write the book that I may never get written. The idea is very
simple, so simple that if you are not careful you will forget it. It is
this—that everyone in the world is Christ and they are all crucified.
That’s what I want to say. Don’t you forget that. Whatever happens,
don’t you dare let yourself forget.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap06"></SPAN>NOBODY KNOWS</h2>
<p>Looking cautiously about, George Willard arose from his desk in the office of
the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i> and went hurriedly out at the back door. The night
was warm and cloudy and although it was not yet eight o’clock, the
alleyway back of the <i>Eagle</i> office was pitch dark. A team of horses tied
to a post somewhere in the darkness stamped on the hard-baked ground. A cat
sprang from under George Willard’s feet and ran away into the night. The
young man was nervous. All day he had gone about his work like one dazed by a
blow. In the alleyway he trembled as though with fright.</p>
<p>In the darkness George Willard walked along the alleyway, going carefully and
cautiously. The back doors of the Winesburg stores were open and he could see
men sitting about under the store lamps. In Myerbaum’s Notion Store Mrs.
Willy the saloon keeper’s wife stood by the counter with a basket on her
arm. Sid Green the clerk was waiting on her. He leaned over the counter and
talked earnestly.</p>
<p>George Willard crouched and then jumped through the path of light that came out
at the door. He began to run forward in the darkness. Behind Ed
Griffith’s saloon old Jerry Bird the town drunkard lay asleep on the
ground. The runner stumbled over the sprawling legs. He laughed brokenly.</p>
<p>George Willard had set forth upon an adventure. All day he had been trying to
make up his mind to go through with the adventure and now he was acting. In the
office of the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i> he had been sitting since six
o’clock trying to think.</p>
<p>There had been no decision. He had just jumped to his feet, hurried past Will
Henderson who was reading proof in the printshop and started to run along the
alleyway.</p>
<p>Through street after street went George Willard, avoiding the people who
passed. He crossed and recrossed the road. When he passed a street lamp he
pulled his hat down over his face. He did not dare think. In his mind there was
a fear but it was a new kind of fear. He was afraid the adventure on which he
had set out would be spoiled, that he would lose courage and turn back.</p>
<p>George Willard found Louise Trunnion in the kitchen of her father’s
house. She was washing dishes by the light of a kerosene lamp. There she stood
behind the screen door in the little shedlike kitchen at the back of the house.
George Willard stopped by a picket fence and tried to control the shaking of
his body. Only a narrow potato patch separated him from the adventure. Five
minutes passed before he felt sure enough of himself to call to her.
“Louise! Oh, Louise!” he called. The cry stuck in his throat. His
voice became a hoarse whisper.</p>
<p>Louise Trunnion came out across the potato patch holding the dish cloth in her
hand. “How do you know I want to go out with you,” she said
sulkily. “What makes you so sure?”</p>
<p>George Willard did not answer. In silence the two stood in the darkness with
the fence between them. “You go on along,” she said.
“Pa’s in there. I’ll come along. You wait by Williams’
barn.”</p>
<p>The young newspaper reporter had received a letter from Louise Trunnion. It had
come that morning to the office of the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i>. The letter was
brief. “I’m yours if you want me,” it said. He thought it
annoying that in the darkness by the fence she had pretended there was nothing
between them. “She has a nerve! Well, gracious sakes, she has a
nerve,” he muttered as he went along the street and passed a row of
vacant lots where corn grew. The corn was shoulder high and had been planted
right down to the sidewalk.</p>
<p>When Louise Trunnion came out of the front door of her house she still wore the
gingham dress in which she had been washing dishes. There was no hat on her
head. The boy could see her standing with the doorknob in her hand talking to
someone within, no doubt to old Jake Trunnion, her father. Old Jake was half
deaf and she shouted. The door closed and everything was dark and silent in the
little side street. George Willard trembled more violently than ever.</p>
<p>In the shadows by Williams’ barn George and Louise stood, not daring to
talk. She was not particularly comely and there was a black smudge on the side
of her nose. George thought she must have rubbed her nose with her finger after
she had been handling some of the kitchen pots.</p>
<p>The young man began to laugh nervously. “It’s warm,” he said.
He wanted to touch her with his hand. “I’m not very bold,” he
thought. Just to touch the folds of the soiled gingham dress would, he decided,
be an exquisite pleasure. She began to quibble. “You think you’re
better than I am. Don’t tell me, I guess I know,” she said drawing
closer to him.</p>
<p>A flood of words burst from George Willard. He remembered the look that had
lurked in the girl’s eyes when they had met on the streets and thought of
the note she had written. Doubt left him. The whispered tales concerning her
that had gone about town gave him confidence. He became wholly the male, bold
and aggressive. In his heart there was no sympathy for her. “Ah, come on,
it’ll be all right. There won’t be anyone know anything. How can
they know?” he urged.</p>
<p>They began to walk along a narrow brick sidewalk between the cracks of which
tall weeds grew. Some of the bricks were missing and the sidewalk was rough and
irregular. He took hold of her hand that was also rough and thought it
delightfully small. “I can’t go far,” she said and her voice
was quiet, unperturbed.</p>
<p>They crossed a bridge that ran over a tiny stream and passed another vacant lot
in which corn grew. The street ended. In the path at the side of the road they
were compelled to walk one behind the other. Will Overton’s berry field
lay beside the road and there was a pile of boards. “Will is going to
build a shed to store berry crates here,” said George and they sat down
upon the boards.</p>
<hr />
<p>When George Willard got back into Main Street it was past ten o’clock and
had begun to rain. Three times he walked up and down the length of Main Street.
Sylvester West’s Drug Store was still open and he went in and bought a
cigar. When Shorty Crandall the clerk came out at the door with him he was
pleased. For five minutes the two stood in the shelter of the store awning and
talked. George Willard felt satisfied. He had wanted more than anything else to
talk to some man. Around a corner toward the New Willard House he went
whistling softly.</p>
<p>On the sidewalk at the side of Winney’s Dry Goods Store where there was a
high board fence covered with circus pictures, he stopped whistling and stood
perfectly still in the darkness, attentive, listening as though for a voice
calling his name. Then again he laughed nervously. “She hasn’t got
anything on me. Nobody knows,” he muttered doggedly and went on his way.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap07"></SPAN>GODLINESS</h2>
<h3>A TALE IN FOUR PARTS</h3>
<h3>PART ONE</h3>
<p>There were always three or four old people sitting on the front porch of the
house or puttering about the garden of the Bentley farm. Three of the old
people were women and sisters to Jesse. They were a colorless, soft voiced lot.
Then there was a silent old man with thin white hair who was Jesse’s
uncle.</p>
<p>The farmhouse was built of wood, a board outer-covering over a framework of
logs. It was in reality not one house but a cluster of houses joined together
in a rather haphazard manner. Inside, the place was full of surprises. One went
up steps from the living room into the dining room and there were always steps
to be ascended or descended in passing from one room to another. At meal times
the place was like a beehive. At one moment all was quiet, then doors began to
open, feet clattered on stairs, a murmur of soft voices arose and people
appeared from a dozen obscure corners.</p>
<p>Besides the old people, already mentioned, many others lived in the Bentley
house. There were four hired men, a woman named Aunt Callie Beebe, who was in
charge of the housekeeping, a dull-witted girl named Eliza Stoughton, who made
beds and helped with the milking, a boy who worked in the stables, and Jesse
Bentley himself, the owner and overlord of it all.</p>
<p>By the time the American Civil War had been over for twenty years, that part of
Northern Ohio where the Bentley farms lay had begun to emerge from pioneer
life. Jesse then owned machinery for harvesting grain. He had built modern
barns and most of his land was drained with carefully laid tile drain, but in
order to understand the man we will have to go back to an earlier day.</p>
<p>The Bentley family had been in Northern Ohio for several generations before
Jesse’s time. They came from New York State and took up land when the
country was new and land could be had at a low price. For a long time they, in
common with all the other Middle Western people, were very poor. The land they
had settled upon was heavily wooded and covered with fallen logs and
underbrush. After the long hard labor of clearing these away and cutting the
timber, there were still the stumps to be reckoned with. Plows run through the
fields caught on hidden roots, stones lay all about, on the low places water
gathered, and the young corn turned yellow, sickened and died.</p>
<p>When Jesse Bentley’s father and brothers had come into their ownership of
the place, much of the harder part of the work of clearing had been done, but
they clung to old traditions and worked like driven animals. They lived as
practically all of the farming people of the time lived. In the spring and
through most of the winter the highways leading into the town of Winesburg were
a sea of mud. The four young men of the family worked hard all day in the
fields, they ate heavily of coarse, greasy food, and at night slept like tired
beasts on beds of straw. Into their lives came little that was not coarse and
brutal and outwardly they were themselves coarse and brutal. On Saturday
afternoons they hitched a team of horses to a three-seated wagon and went off
to town. In town they stood about the stoves in the stores talking to other
farmers or to the store keepers. They were dressed in overalls and in the
winter wore heavy coats that were flecked with mud. Their hands as they
stretched them out to the heat of the stoves were cracked and red. It was
difficult for them to talk and so they for the most part kept silent. When they
had bought meat, flour, sugar, and salt, they went into one of the Winesburg
saloons and drank beer. Under the influence of drink the naturally strong lusts
of their natures, kept suppressed by the heroic labor of breaking up new
ground, were released. A kind of crude and animal-like poetic fervor took
possession of them. On the road home they stood up on the wagon seats and
shouted at the stars. Sometimes they fought long and bitterly and at other
times they broke forth into songs. Once Enoch Bentley, the older one of the
boys, struck his father, old Tom Bentley, with the butt of a teamster’s
whip, and the old man seemed likely to die. For days Enoch lay hid in the straw
in the loft of the stable ready to flee if the result of his momentary passion
turned out to be murder. He was kept alive with food brought by his mother, who
also kept him informed of the injured man’s condition. When all turned
out well he emerged from his hiding place and went back to the work of clearing
land as though nothing had happened.</p>
<hr />
<p>The Civil War brought a sharp turn to the fortunes of the Bentleys and was
responsible for the rise of the youngest son, Jesse. Enoch, Edward, Harry, and
Will Bentley all enlisted and before the long war ended they were all killed.
For a time after they went away to the South, old Tom tried to run the place,
but he was not successful. When the last of the four had been killed he sent
word to Jesse that he would have to come home.</p>
<p>Then the mother, who had not been well for a year, died suddenly, and the
father became altogether discouraged. He talked of selling the farm and moving
into town. All day he went about shaking his head and muttering. The work in
the fields was neglected and weeds grew high in the corn. Old Tom hired men but
he did not use them intelligently. When they had gone away to the fields in the
morning he wandered into the woods and sat down on a log. Sometimes he forgot
to come home at night and one of the daughters had to go in search of him.</p>
<p>When Jesse Bentley came home to the farm and began to take charge of things he
was a slight, sensitive-looking man of twenty-two. At eighteen he had left home
to go to school to become a scholar and eventually to become a minister of the
Presbyterian Church. All through his boyhood he had been what in our country
was called an “odd sheep” and had not got on with his brothers. Of
all the family only his mother had understood him and she was now dead. When he
came home to take charge of the farm, that had at that time grown to more than
six hundred acres, everyone on the farms about and in the nearby town of
Winesburg smiled at the idea of his trying to handle the work that had been
done by his four strong brothers.</p>
<p>There was indeed good cause to smile. By the standards of his day Jesse did not
look like a man at all. He was small and very slender and womanish of body and,
true to the traditions of young ministers, wore a long black coat and a narrow
black string tie. The neighbors were amused when they saw him, after the years
away, and they were even more amused when they saw the woman he had married in
the city.</p>
<p>As a matter of fact, Jesse’s wife did soon go under. That was perhaps
Jesse’s fault. A farm in Northern Ohio in the hard years after the Civil
War was no place for a delicate woman, and Katherine Bentley was delicate.
Jesse was hard with her as he was with everybody about him in those days. She
tried to do such work as all the neighbor women about her did and he let her go
on without interference. She helped to do the milking and did part of the
housework; she made the beds for the men and prepared their food. For a year
she worked every day from sunrise until late at night and then after giving
birth to a child she died.</p>
<p>As for Jesse Bentley—although he was a delicately built man there was
something within him that could not easily be killed. He had brown curly hair
and grey eyes that were at times hard and direct, at times wavering and
uncertain. Not only was he slender but he was also short of stature. His mouth
was like the mouth of a sensitive and very determined child. Jesse Bentley was
a fanatic. He was a man born out of his time and place and for this he suffered
and made others suffer. Never did he succeed in getting what he wanted out of
life and he did not know what he wanted. Within a very short time after he came
home to the Bentley farm he made everyone there a little afraid of him, and his
wife, who should have been close to him as his mother had been, was afraid
also. At the end of two weeks after his coming, old Tom Bentley made over to
him the entire ownership of the place and retired into the background. Everyone
retired into the background. In spite of his youth and inexperience, Jesse had
the trick of mastering the souls of his people. He was so in earnest in
everything he did and said that no one understood him. He made everyone on the
farm work as they had never worked before and yet there was no joy in the work.
If things went well they went well for Jesse and never for the people who were
his dependents. Like a thousand other strong men who have come into the world
here in America in these later times, Jesse was but half strong. He could
master others but he could not master himself. The running of the farm as it
had never been run before was easy for him. When he came home from Cleveland
where he had been in school, he shut himself off from all of his people and
began to make plans. He thought about the farm night and day and that made him
successful. Other men on the farms about him worked too hard and were too fired
to think, but to think of the farm and to be everlastingly making plans for its
success was a relief to Jesse. It partially satisfied something in his
passionate nature. Immediately after he came home he had a wing built on to the
old house and in a large room facing the west he had windows that looked into
the barnyard and other windows that looked off across the fields. By the window
he sat down to think. Hour after hour and day after day he sat and looked over
the land and thought out his new place in life. The passionate burning thing in
his nature flamed up and his eyes became hard. He wanted to make the farm
produce as no farm in his state had ever produced before and then he wanted
something else. It was the indefinable hunger within that made his eyes waver
and that kept him always more and more silent before people. He would have
given much to achieve peace and in him was a fear that peace was the thing he
could not achieve.</p>
<p>All over his body Jesse Bentley was alive. In his small frame was gathered the
force of a long line of strong men. He had always been extraordinarily alive
when he was a small boy on the farm and later when he was a young man in
school. In the school he had studied and thought of God and the Bible with his
whole mind and heart. As time passed and he grew to know people better, he
began to think of himself as an extraordinary man, one set apart from his
fellows. He wanted terribly to make his life a thing of great importance, and
as he looked about at his fellow men and saw how like clods they lived it
seemed to him that he could not bear to become also such a clod. Although in
his absorption in himself and in his own destiny he was blind to the fact that
his young wife was doing a strong woman’s work even after she had become
large with child and that she was killing herself in his service, he did not
intend to be unkind to her. When his father, who was old and twisted with toil,
made over to him the ownership of the farm and seemed content to creep away to
a corner and wait for death, he shrugged his shoulders and dismissed the old
man from his mind.</p>
<p>In the room by the window overlooking the land that had come down to him sat
Jesse thinking of his own affairs. In the stables he could hear the tramping of
his horses and the restless movement of his cattle. Away in the fields he could
see other cattle wandering over green hills. The voices of men, his men who
worked for him, came in to him through the window. From the milkhouse there was
the steady thump, thump of a churn being manipulated by the half-witted girl,
Eliza Stoughton. Jesse’s mind went back to the men of Old Testament days
who had also owned lands and herds. He remembered how God had come down out of
the skies and talked to these men and he wanted God to notice and to talk to
him also. A kind of feverish boyish eagerness to in some way achieve in his own
life the flavor of significance that had hung over these men took possession of
him. Being a prayerful man he spoke of the matter aloud to God and the sound of
his own words strengthened and fed his eagerness.</p>
<p>“I am a new kind of man come into possession of these fields,” he
declared. “Look upon me, O God, and look Thou also upon my neighbors and
all the men who have gone before me here! O God, create in me another Jesse,
like that one of old, to rule over men and to be the father of sons who shall
be rulers!” Jesse grew excited as he talked aloud and jumping to his feet
walked up and down in the room. In fancy he saw himself living in old times and
among old peoples. The land that lay stretched out before him became of vast
significance, a place peopled by his fancy with a new race of men sprung from
himself. It seemed to him that in his day as in those other and older days,
kingdoms might be created and new impulses given to the lives of men by the
power of God speaking through a chosen servant. He longed to be such a servant.
“It is God’s work I have come to the land to do,” he declared
in a loud voice and his short figure straightened and he thought that something
like a halo of Godly approval hung over him.</p>
<hr />
<p>It will perhaps be somewhat difficult for the men and women of a later day to
understand Jesse Bentley. In the last fifty years a vast change has taken place
in the lives of our people. A revolution has in fact taken place. The coming of
industrialism, attended by all the roar and rattle of affairs, the shrill cries
of millions of new voices that have come among us from overseas, the going and
coming of trains, the growth of cities, the building of the inter-urban car
lines that weave in and out of towns and past farmhouses, and now in these
later days the coming of the automobiles has worked a tremendous change in the
lives and in the habits of thought of our people of Mid-America. Books, badly
imagined and written though they may be in the hurry of our times, are in every
household, magazines circulate by the millions of copies, newspapers are
everywhere. In our day a farmer standing by the stove in the store in his
village has his mind filled to overflowing with the words of other men. The
newspapers and the magazines have pumped him full. Much of the old brutal
ignorance that had in it also a kind of beautiful childlike innocence is gone
forever. The farmer by the stove is brother to the men of the cities, and if
you listen you will find him talking as glibly and as senselessly as the best
city man of us all.</p>
<p>In Jesse Bentley’s time and in the country districts of the whole Middle
West in the years after the Civil War it was not so. Men labored too hard and
were too tired to read. In them was no desire for words printed upon paper. As
they worked in the fields, vague, half-formed thoughts took possession of them.
They believed in God and in God’s power to control their lives. In the
little Protestant churches they gathered on Sunday to hear of God and his
works. The churches were the center of the social and intellectual life of the
times. The figure of God was big in the hearts of men.</p>
<p>And so, having been born an imaginative child and having within him a great
intellectual eagerness, Jesse Bentley had turned wholeheartedly toward God.
When the war took his brothers away, he saw the hand of God in that. When his
father became ill and could no longer attend to the running of the farm, he
took that also as a sign from God. In the city, when the word came to him, he
walked about at night through the streets thinking of the matter and when he
had come home and had got the work on the farm well under way, he went again at
night to walk through the forests and over the low hills and to think of God.</p>
<p>As he walked the importance of his own figure in some divine plan grew in his
mind. He grew avaricious and was impatient that the farm contained only six
hundred acres. Kneeling in a fence corner at the edge of some meadow, he sent
his voice abroad into the silence and looking up he saw the stars shining down
at him.</p>
<p>One evening, some months after his father’s death, and when his wife
Katherine was expecting at any moment to be laid abed of childbirth, Jesse left
his house and went for a long walk. The Bentley farm was situated in a tiny
valley watered by Wine Creek, and Jesse walked along the banks of the stream to
the end of his own land and on through the fields of his neighbors. As he
walked the valley broadened and then narrowed again. Great open stretches of
field and wood lay before him. The moon came out from behind clouds, and,
climbing a low hill, he sat down to think.</p>
<p>Jesse thought that as the true servant of God the entire stretch of country
through which he had walked should have come into his possession. He thought of
his dead brothers and blamed them that they had not worked harder and achieved
more. Before him in the moonlight the tiny stream ran down over stones, and he
began to think of the men of old times who like himself had owned flocks and
lands.</p>
<p>A fantastic impulse, half fear, half greediness, took possession of Jesse
Bentley. He remembered how in the old Bible story the Lord had appeared to that
other Jesse and told him to send his son David to where Saul and the men of
Israel were fighting the Philistines in the Valley of Elah. Into Jesse’s
mind came the conviction that all of the Ohio farmers who owned land in the
valley of Wine Creek were Philistines and enemies of God.
“Suppose,” he whispered to himself, “there should come from
among them one who, like Goliath the Philistine of Gath, could defeat me and
take from me my possessions.” In fancy he felt the sickening dread that
he thought must have lain heavy on the heart of Saul before the coming of
David. Jumping to his feet, he began to run through the night. As he ran he
called to God. His voice carried far over the low hills. “Jehovah of
Hosts,” he cried, “send to me this night out of the womb of
Katherine, a son. Let Thy grace alight upon me. Send me a son to be called
David who shall help me to pluck at last all of these lands out of the hands of
the Philistines and turn them to Thy service and to the building of Thy kingdom
on earth.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap08"></SPAN>GODLINESS</h2>
<h3>PART TWO</h3>
<p>David Hardy of Winesburg, Ohio, was the grandson of Jesse Bentley, the owner of
Bentley farms. When he was twelve years old he went to the old Bentley place to
live. His mother, Louise Bentley, the girl who came into the world on that
night when Jesse ran through the fields crying to God that he be given a son,
had grown to womanhood on the farm and had married young John Hardy of
Winesburg, who became a banker. Louise and her husband did not live happily
together and everyone agreed that she was to blame. She was a small woman with
sharp grey eyes and black hair. From childhood she had been inclined to fits of
temper and when not angry she was often morose and silent. In Winesburg it was
said that she drank. Her husband, the banker, who was a careful, shrewd man,
tried hard to make her happy. When he began to make money he bought for her a
large brick house on Elm Street in Winesburg and he was the first man in that
town to keep a manservant to drive his wife’s carriage.</p>
<p>But Louise could not be made happy. She flew into half insane fits of temper
during which she was sometimes silent, sometimes noisy and quarrelsome. She
swore and cried out in her anger. She got a knife from the kitchen and
threatened her husband’s life. Once she deliberately set fire to the
house, and often she hid herself away for days in her own room and would see no
one. Her life, lived as a half recluse, gave rise to all sorts of stories
concerning her. It was said that she took drugs and that she hid herself away
from people because she was often so under the influence of drink that her
condition could not be concealed. Sometimes on summer afternoons she came out
of the house and got into her carriage. Dismissing the driver she took the
reins in her own hands and drove off at top speed through the streets. If a
pedestrian got in her way she drove straight ahead and the frightened citizen
had to escape as best he could. To the people of the town it seemed as though
she wanted to run them down. When she had driven through several streets,
tearing around corners and beating the horses with the whip, she drove off into
the country. On the country roads after she had gotten out of sight of the
houses she let the horses slow down to a walk and her wild, reckless mood
passed. She became thoughtful and muttered words. Sometimes tears came into her
eyes. And then when she came back into town she again drove furiously through
the quiet streets. But for the influence of her husband and the respect he
inspired in people’s minds she would have been arrested more than once by
the town marshal.</p>
<p>Young David Hardy grew up in the house with this woman and as can well be
imagined there was not much joy in his childhood. He was too young then to have
opinions of his own about people, but at times it was difficult for him not to
have very definite opinions about the woman who was his mother. David was
always a quiet, orderly boy and for a long time was thought by the people of
Winesburg to be something of a dullard. His eyes were brown and as a child he
had a habit of looking at things and people a long time without appearing to
see what he was looking at. When he heard his mother spoken of harshly or when
he overheard her berating his father, he was frightened and ran away to hide.
Sometimes he could not find a hiding place and that confused him. Turning his
face toward a tree or if he was indoors toward the wall, he closed his eyes and
tried not to think of anything. He had a habit of talking aloud to himself, and
early in life a spirit of quiet sadness often took possession of him.</p>
<p>On the occasions when David went to visit his grandfather on the Bentley farm,
he was altogether contented and happy. Often he wished that he would never have
to go back to town and once when he had come home from the farm after a long
visit, something happened that had a lasting effect on his mind.</p>
<p>David had come back into town with one of the hired men. The man was in a hurry
to go about his own affairs and left the boy at the head of the street in which
the Hardy house stood. It was early dusk of a fall evening and the sky was
overcast with clouds. Something happened to David. He could not bear to go into
the house where his mother and father lived, and on an impulse he decided to
run away from home. He intended to go back to the farm and to his grandfather,
but lost his way and for hours he wandered weeping and frightened on country
roads. It started to rain and lightning flashed in the sky. The boy’s
imagination was excited and he fancied that he could see and hear strange
things in the darkness. Into his mind came the conviction that he was walking
and running in some terrible void where no one had ever been before. The
darkness about him seemed limitless. The sound of the wind blowing in trees was
terrifying. When a team of horses approached along the road in which he walked
he was frightened and climbed a fence. Through a field he ran until he came
into another road and getting upon his knees felt of the soft ground with his
fingers. But for the figure of his grandfather, whom he was afraid he would
never find in the darkness, he thought the world must be altogether empty. When
his cries were heard by a farmer who was walking home from town and he was
brought back to his father’s house, he was so tired and excited that he
did not know what was happening to him.</p>
<p>By chance David’s father knew that he had disappeared. On the street he
had met the farm hand from the Bentley place and knew of his son’s return
to town. When the boy did not come home an alarm was set up and John Hardy with
several men of the town went to search the country. The report that David had
been kidnapped ran about through the streets of Winesburg. When he came home
there were no lights in the house, but his mother appeared and clutched him
eagerly in her arms. David thought she had suddenly become another woman. He
could not believe that so delightful a thing had happened. With her own hands
Louise Hardy bathed his tired young body and cooked him food. She would not let
him go to bed but, when he had put on his nightgown, blew out the lights and
sat down in a chair to hold him in her arms. For an hour the woman sat in the
darkness and held her boy. All the time she kept talking in a low voice. David
could not understand what had so changed her. Her habitually dissatisfied face
had become, he thought, the most peaceful and lovely thing he had ever seen.
When he began to weep she held him more and more tightly. On and on went her
voice. It was not harsh or shrill as when she talked to her husband, but was
like rain falling on trees. Presently men began coming to the door to report
that he had not been found, but she made him hide and be silent until she had
sent them away. He thought it must be a game his mother and the men of the town
were playing with him and laughed joyously. Into his mind came the thought that
his having been lost and frightened in the darkness was an altogether
unimportant matter. He thought that he would have been willing to go through
the frightful experience a thousand times to be sure of finding at the end of
the long black road a thing so lovely as his mother had suddenly become.</p>
<hr />
<p>During the last years of young David’s boyhood he saw his mother but
seldom and she became for him just a woman with whom he had once lived. Still
he could not get her figure out of his mind and as he grew older it became more
definite. When he was twelve years old he went to the Bentley farm to live. Old
Jesse came into town and fairly demanded that he be given charge of the boy.
The old man was excited and determined on having his own way. He talked to John
Hardy in the office of the Winesburg Savings Bank and then the two men went to
the house on Elm Street to talk with Louise. They both expected her to make
trouble but were mistaken. She was very quiet and when Jesse had explained his
mission and had gone on at some length about the advantages to come through
having the boy out of doors and in the quiet atmosphere of the old farmhouse,
she nodded her head in approval. “It is an atmosphere not corrupted by my
presence,” she said sharply. Her shoulders shook and she seemed about to
fly into a fit of temper. “It is a place for a man child, although it was
never a place for me,” she went on. “You never wanted me there and
of course the air of your house did me no good. It was like poison in my blood
but it will be different with him.”</p>
<p>Louise turned and went out of the room, leaving the two men to sit in
embarrassed silence. As very often happened she later stayed in her room for
days. Even when the boy’s clothes were packed and he was taken away she
did not appear. The loss of her son made a sharp break in her life and she
seemed less inclined to quarrel with her husband. John Hardy thought it had all
turned out very well indeed.</p>
<p>And so young David went to live in the Bentley farmhouse with Jesse. Two of the
old farmer’s sisters were alive and still lived in the house. They were
afraid of Jesse and rarely spoke when he was about. One of the women who had
been noted for her flaming red hair when she was younger was a born mother and
became the boy’s caretaker. Every night when he had gone to bed she went
into his room and sat on the floor until he fell asleep. When he became drowsy
she became bold and whispered things that he later thought he must have
dreamed.</p>
<p>Her soft low voice called him endearing names and he dreamed that his mother
had come to him and that she had changed so that she was always as she had been
that time after he ran away. He also grew bold and reaching out his hand
stroked the face of the woman on the floor so that she was ecstatically happy.
Everyone in the old house became happy after the boy went there. The hard
insistent thing in Jesse Bentley that had kept the people in the house silent
and timid and that had never been dispelled by the presence of the girl Louise
was apparently swept away by the coming of the boy. It was as though God had
relented and sent a son to the man.</p>
<p>The man who had proclaimed himself the only true servant of God in all the
valley of Wine Creek, and who had wanted God to send him a sign of approval by
way of a son out of the womb of Katherine, began to think that at last his
prayers had been answered. Although he was at that time only fifty-five years
old he looked seventy and was worn out with much thinking and scheming. The
effort he had made to extend his land holdings had been successful and there
were few farms in the valley that did not belong to him, but until David came
he was a bitterly disappointed man.</p>
<p>There were two influences at work in Jesse Bentley and all his life his mind
had been a battleground for these influences. First there was the old thing in
him. He wanted to be a man of God and a leader among men of God. His walking in
the fields and through the forests at night had brought him close to nature and
there were forces in the passionately religious man that ran out to the forces
in nature. The disappointment that had come to him when a daughter and not a
son had been born to Katherine had fallen upon him like a blow struck by some
unseen hand and the blow had somewhat softened his egotism. He still believed
that God might at any moment make himself manifest out of the winds or the
clouds, but he no longer demanded such recognition. Instead he prayed for it.
Sometimes he was altogether doubtful and thought God had deserted the world. He
regretted the fate that had not let him live in a simpler and sweeter time when
at the beckoning of some strange cloud in the sky men left their lands and
houses and went forth into the wilderness to create new races. While he worked
night and day to make his farms more productive and to extend his holdings of
land, he regretted that he could not use his own restless energy in the
building of temples, the slaying of unbelievers and in general in the work of
glorifying God’s name on earth.</p>
<p>That is what Jesse hungered for and then also he hungered for something else.
He had grown into maturity in America in the years after the Civil War and he,
like all men of his time, had been touched by the deep influences that were at
work in the country during those years when modern industrialism was being
born. He began to buy machines that would permit him to do the work of the
farms while employing fewer men and he sometimes thought that if he were a
younger man he would give up farming altogether and start a factory in
Winesburg for the making of machinery. Jesse formed the habit of reading
newspapers and magazines. He invented a machine for the making of fence out of
wire. Faintly he realized that the atmosphere of old times and places that he
had always cultivated in his own mind was strange and foreign to the thing that
was growing up in the minds of others. The beginning of the most materialistic
age in the history of the world, when wars would be fought without patriotism,
when men would forget God and only pay attention to moral standards, when the
will to power would replace the will to serve and beauty would be well-nigh
forgotten in the terrible headlong rush of mankind toward the acquiring of
possessions, was telling its story to Jesse the man of God as it was to the men
about him. The greedy thing in him wanted to make money faster than it could be
made by tilling the land. More than once he went into Winesburg to talk with
his son-in-law John Hardy about it. “You are a banker and you will have
chances I never had,” he said and his eyes shone. “I am thinking
about it all the time. Big things are going to be done in the country and there
will be more money to be made than I ever dreamed of. You get into it. I wish I
were younger and had your chance.” Jesse Bentley walked up and down in
the bank office and grew more and more excited as he talked. At one time in his
life he had been threatened with paralysis and his left side remained somewhat
weakened. As he talked his left eyelid twitched. Later when he drove back home
and when night came on and the stars came out it was harder to get back the old
feeling of a close and personal God who lived in the sky overhead and who might
at any moment reach out his hand, touch him on the shoulder, and appoint for
him some heroic task to be done. Jesse’s mind was fixed upon the things
read in newspapers and magazines, on fortunes to be made almost without effort
by shrewd men who bought and sold. For him the coming of the boy David did much
to bring back with renewed force the old faith and it seemed to him that God
had at last looked with favor upon him.</p>
<p>As for the boy on the farm, life began to reveal itself to him in a thousand
new and delightful ways. The kindly attitude of all about him expanded his
quiet nature and he lost the half timid, hesitating manner he had always had
with his people. At night when he went to bed after a long day of adventures in
the stables, in the fields, or driving about from farm to farm with his
grandfather, he wanted to embrace everyone in the house. If Sherley Bentley,
the woman who came each night to sit on the floor by his bedside, did not
appear at once, he went to the head of the stairs and shouted, his young voice
ringing through the narrow halls where for so long there had been a tradition
of silence. In the morning when he awoke and lay still in bed, the sounds that
came in to him through the windows filled him with delight. He thought with a
shudder of the life in the house in Winesburg and of his mother’s angry
voice that had always made him tremble. There in the country all sounds were
pleasant sounds. When he awoke at dawn the barnyard back of the house also
awoke. In the house people stirred about. Eliza Stoughton the half-witted girl
was poked in the ribs by a farm hand and giggled noisily, in some distant field
a cow bawled and was answered by the cattle in the stables, and one of the farm
hands spoke sharply to the horse he was grooming by the stable door. David
leaped out of bed and ran to a window. All of the people stirring about excited
his mind, and he wondered what his mother was doing in the house in town.</p>
<p>From the windows of his own room he could not see directly into the barnyard
where the farm hands had now all assembled to do the morning shores, but he
could hear the voices of the men and the neighing of the horses. When one of
the men laughed, he laughed also. Leaning out at the open window, he looked
into an orchard where a fat sow wandered about with a litter of tiny pigs at
her heels. Every morning he counted the pigs. “Four, five, six,
seven,” he said slowly, wetting his finger and making straight up and
down marks on the window ledge. David ran to put on his trousers and shirt. A
feverish desire to get out of doors took possession of him. Every morning he
made such a noise coming down stairs that Aunt Callie, the housekeeper,
declared he was trying to tear the house down. When he had run through the long
old house, shutting the doors behind him with a bang, he came into the barnyard
and looked about with an amazed air of expectancy. It seemed to him that in
such a place tremendous things might have happened during the night. The farm
hands looked at him and laughed. Henry Strader, an old man who had been on the
farm since Jesse came into possession and who before David’s time had
never been known to make a joke, made the same joke every morning. It amused
David so that he laughed and clapped his hands. “See, come here and
look,” cried the old man. “Grandfather Jesse’s white mare has
torn the black stocking she wears on her foot.”</p>
<p>Day after day through the long summer, Jesse Bentley drove from farm to farm up
and down the valley of Wine Creek, and his grandson went with him. They rode in
a comfortable old phaeton drawn by the white horse. The old man scratched his
thin white beard and talked to himself of his plans for increasing the
productiveness of the fields they visited and of God’s part in the plans
all men made. Sometimes he looked at David and smiled happily and then for a
long time he appeared to forget the boy’s existence. More and more every
day now his mind turned back again to the dreams that had filled his mind when
he had first come out of the city to live on the land. One afternoon he
startled David by letting his dreams take entire possession of him. With the
boy as a witness, he went through a ceremony and brought about an accident that
nearly destroyed the companionship that was growing up between them.</p>
<p>Jesse and his grandson were driving in a distant part of the valley some miles
from home. A forest came down to the road and through the forest Wine Creek
wriggled its way over stones toward a distant river. All the afternoon Jesse
had been in a meditative mood and now he began to talk. His mind went back to
the night when he had been frightened by thoughts of a giant that might come to
rob and plunder him of his possessions, and again as on that night when he had
run through the fields crying for a son, he became excited to the edge of
insanity. Stopping the horse he got out of the buggy and asked David to get out
also. The two climbed over a fence and walked along the bank of the stream. The
boy paid no attention to the muttering of his grandfather, but ran along beside
him and wondered what was going to happen. When a rabbit jumped up and ran away
through the woods, he clapped his hands and danced with delight. He looked at
the tall trees and was sorry that he was not a little animal to climb high in
the air without being frightened. Stooping, he picked up a small stone and
threw it over the head of his grandfather into a clump of bushes. “Wake
up, little animal. Go and climb to the top of the trees,” he shouted in a
shrill voice.</p>
<p>Jesse Bentley went along under the trees with his head bowed and with his mind
in a ferment. His earnestness affected the boy, who presently became silent and
a little alarmed. Into the old man’s mind had come the notion that now he
could bring from God a word or a sign out of the sky, that the presence of the
boy and man on their knees in some lonely spot in the forest would make the
miracle he had been waiting for almost inevitable. “It was in just such a
place as this that other David tended the sheep when his father came and told
him to go down unto Saul,” he muttered.</p>
<p>Taking the boy rather roughly by the shoulder, he climbed over a fallen log and
when he had come to an open place among the trees he dropped upon his knees and
began to pray in a loud voice.</p>
<p>A kind of terror he had never known before took possession of David. Crouching
beneath a tree he watched the man on the ground before him and his own knees
began to tremble. It seemed to him that he was in the presence not only of his
grandfather but of someone else, someone who might hurt him, someone who was
not kindly but dangerous and brutal. He began to cry and reaching down picked
up a small stick, which he held tightly gripped in his fingers. When Jesse
Bentley, absorbed in his own idea, suddenly arose and advanced toward him, his
terror grew until his whole body shook. In the woods an intense silence seemed
to lie over everything and suddenly out of the silence came the old man’s
harsh and insistent voice. Gripping the boy’s shoulders, Jesse turned his
face to the sky and shouted. The whole left side of his face twitched and his
hand on the boy’s shoulder twitched also. “Make a sign to me,
God,” he cried. “Here I stand with the boy David. Come down to me
out of the sky and make Thy presence known to me.”</p>
<p>With a cry of fear, David turned and, shaking himself loose from the hands that
held him, ran away through the forest. He did not believe that the man who
turned up his face and in a harsh voice shouted at the sky was his grandfather
at all. The man did not look like his grandfather. The conviction that
something strange and terrible had happened, that by some miracle a new and
dangerous person had come into the body of the kindly old man, took possession
of him. On and on he ran down the hillside, sobbing as he ran. When he fell
over the roots of a tree and in falling struck his head, he arose and tried to
run on again. His head hurt so that presently he fell down and lay still, but
it was only after Jesse had carried him to the buggy and he awoke to find the
old man’s hand stroking his head tenderly that the terror left him.
“Take me away. There is a terrible man back there in the woods,” he
declared firmly, while Jesse looked away over the tops of the trees and again
his lips cried out to God. “What have I done that Thou dost not approve
of me,” he whispered softly, saying the words over and over as he drove
rapidly along the road with the boy’s cut and bleeding head held tenderly
against his shoulder.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap09"></SPAN>SURRENDER</h2>
<h3>PART THREE</h3>
<p>The story of Louise Bentley, who became Mrs. John Hardy and lived with her
husband in a brick house on Elm Street in Winesburg, is a story of
misunderstanding.</p>
<p>Before such women as Louise can be understood and their lives made livable,
much will have to be done. Thoughtful books will have to be written and
thoughtful lives lived by people about them.</p>
<p>Born of a delicate and overworked mother, and an impulsive, hard, imaginative
father, who did not look with favor upon her coming into the world, Louise was
from childhood a neurotic, one of the race of over-sensitive women that in
later days industrialism was to bring in such great numbers into the world.</p>
<p>During her early years she lived on the Bentley farm, a silent, moody child,
wanting love more than anything else in the world and not getting it. When she
was fifteen she went to live in Winesburg with the family of Albert Hardy, who
had a store for the sale of buggies and wagons, and who was a member of the
town board of education.</p>
<p>Louise went into town to be a student in the Winesburg High School and she went
to live at the Hardys’ because Albert Hardy and her father were friends.</p>
<p>Hardy, the vehicle merchant of Winesburg, like thousands of other men of his
times, was an enthusiast on the subject of education. He had made his own way
in the world without learning got from books, but he was convinced that had he
but known books things would have gone better with him. To everyone who came
into his shop he talked of the matter, and in his own household he drove his
family distracted by his constant harping on the subject.</p>
<p>He had two daughters and one son, John Hardy, and more than once the daughters
threatened to leave school altogether. As a matter of principle they did just
enough work in their classes to avoid punishment. “I hate books and I
hate anyone who likes books,” Harriet, the younger of the two girls,
declared passionately.</p>
<p>In Winesburg as on the farm Louise was not happy. For years she had dreamed of
the time when she could go forth into the world, and she looked upon the move
into the Hardy household as a great step in the direction of freedom. Always
when she had thought of the matter, it had seemed to her that in town all must
be gaiety and life, that there men and women must live happily and freely,
giving and taking friendship and affection as one takes the feel of a wind on
the cheek. After the silence and the cheerlessness of life in the Bentley
house, she dreamed of stepping forth into an atmosphere that was warm and
pulsating with life and reality. And in the Hardy household Louise might have
got something of the thing for which she so hungered but for a mistake she made
when she had just come to town.</p>
<p>Louise won the disfavor of the two Hardy girls, Mary and Harriet, by her
application to her studies in school. She did not come to the house until the
day when school was to begin and knew nothing of the feeling they had in the
matter. She was timid and during the first month made no acquaintances. Every
Friday afternoon one of the hired men from the farm drove into Winesburg and
took her home for the week-end, so that she did not spend the Saturday holiday
with the town people. Because she was embarrassed and lonely she worked
constantly at her studies. To Mary and Harriet, it seemed as though she tried
to make trouble for them by her proficiency. In her eagerness to appear well
Louise wanted to answer every question put to the class by the teacher. She
jumped up and down and her eyes flashed. Then when she had answered some
question the others in the class had been unable to answer, she smiled happily.
“See, I have done it for you,” her eyes seemed to say. “You
need not bother about the matter. I will answer all questions. For the whole
class it will be easy while I am here.”</p>
<p>In the evening after supper in the Hardy house, Albert Hardy began to praise
Louise. One of the teachers had spoken highly of her and he was delighted.
“Well, again I have heard of it,” he began, looking hard at his
daughters and then turning to smile at Louise. “Another of the teachers
has told me of the good work Louise is doing. Everyone in Winesburg is telling
me how smart she is. I am ashamed that they do not speak so of my own
girls.” Arising, the merchant marched about the room and lighted his
evening cigar.</p>
<p>The two girls looked at each other and shook their heads wearily. Seeing their
indifference the father became angry. “I tell you it is something for you
two to be thinking about,” he cried, glaring at them. “There is a
big change coming here in America and in learning is the only hope of the
coming generations. Louise is the daughter of a rich man but she is not ashamed
to study. It should make you ashamed to see what she does.”</p>
<p>The merchant took his hat from a rack by the door and prepared to depart for
the evening. At the door he stopped and glared back. So fierce was his manner
that Louise was frightened and ran upstairs to her own room. The daughters
began to speak of their own affairs. “Pay attention to me,” roared
the merchant. “Your minds are lazy. Your indifference to education is
affecting your characters. You will amount to nothing. Now mark what I
say—Louise will be so far ahead of you that you will never catch
up.”</p>
<p>The distracted man went out of the house and into the street shaking with
wrath. He went along muttering words and swearing, but when he got into Main
Street his anger passed. He stopped to talk of the weather or the crops with
some other merchant or with a farmer who had come into town and forgot his
daughters altogether or, if he thought of them, only shrugged his shoulders.
“Oh, well, girls will be girls,” he muttered philosophically.</p>
<p>In the house when Louise came down into the room where the two girls sat, they
would have nothing to do with her. One evening after she had been there for
more than six weeks and was heartbroken because of the continued air of
coldness with which she was always greeted, she burst into tears. “Shut
up your crying and go back to your own room and to your books,” Mary
Hardy said sharply.</p>
<hr />
<p>The room occupied by Louise was on the second floor of the Hardy house, and her
window looked out upon an orchard. There was a stove in the room and every
evening young John Hardy carried up an armful of wood and put it in a box that
stood by the wall. During the second month after she came to the house, Louise
gave up all hope of getting on a friendly footing with the Hardy girls and went
to her own room as soon as the evening meal was at an end.</p>
<p>Her mind began to play with thoughts of making friends with John Hardy. When he
came into the room with the wood in his arms, she pretended to be busy with her
studies but watched him eagerly. When he had put the wood in the box and turned
to go out, she put down her head and blushed. She tried to make talk but could
say nothing, and after he had gone she was angry at herself for her stupidity.</p>
<p>The mind of the country girl became filled with the idea of drawing close to
the young man. She thought that in him might be found the quality she had all
her life been seeking in people. It seemed to her that between herself and all
the other people in the world, a wall had been built up and that she was living
just on the edge of some warm inner circle of life that must be quite open and
understandable to others. She became obsessed with the thought that it wanted
but a courageous act on her part to make all of her association with people
something quite different, and that it was possible by such an act to pass into
a new life as one opens a door and goes into a room. Day and night she thought
of the matter, but although the thing she wanted so earnestly was something
very warm and close it had as yet no conscious connection with sex. It had not
become that definite, and her mind had only alighted upon the person of John
Hardy because he was at hand and unlike his sisters had not been unfriendly to
her.</p>
<p>The Hardy sisters, Mary and Harriet, were both older than Louise. In a certain
kind of knowledge of the world they were years older. They lived as all of the
young women of Middle Western towns lived. In those days young women did not go
out of our towns to Eastern colleges and ideas in regard to social classes had
hardly begun to exist. A daughter of a laborer was in much the same social
position as a daughter of a farmer or a merchant, and there were no leisure
classes. A girl was “nice” or she was “not nice.” If a
nice girl, she had a young man who came to her house to see her on Sunday and
on Wednesday evenings. Sometimes she went with her young man to a dance or a
church social. At other times she received him at the house and was given the
use of the parlor for that purpose. No one intruded upon her. For hours the two
sat behind closed doors. Sometimes the lights were turned low and the young man
and woman embraced. Cheeks became hot and hair disarranged. After a year or
two, if the impulse within them became strong and insistent enough, they
married.</p>
<p>One evening during her first winter in Winesburg, Louise had an adventure that
gave a new impulse to her desire to break down the wall that she thought stood
between her and John Hardy. It was Wednesday and immediately after the evening
meal Albert Hardy put on his hat and went away. Young John brought the wood and
put it in the box in Louise’s room. “You do work hard, don’t
you?” he said awkwardly, and then before she could answer he also went
away.</p>
<p>Louise heard him go out of the house and had a mad desire to run after him.
Opening her window she leaned out and called softly, “John, dear John,
come back, don’t go away.” The night was cloudy and she could not
see far into the darkness, but as she waited she fancied she could hear a soft
little noise as of someone going on tiptoes through the trees in the orchard.
She was frightened and closed the window quickly. For an hour she moved about
the room trembling with excitement and when she could not longer bear the
waiting, she crept into the hall and down the stairs into a closet-like room
that opened off the parlor.</p>
<p>Louise had decided that she would perform the courageous act that had for weeks
been in her mind. She was convinced that John Hardy had concealed himself in
the orchard beneath her window and she was determined to find him and tell him
that she wanted him to come close to her, to hold her in his arms, to tell her
of his thoughts and dreams and to listen while she told him her thoughts and
dreams. “In the darkness it will be easier to say things,” she
whispered to herself, as she stood in the little room groping for the door.</p>
<p>And then suddenly Louise realized that she was not alone in the house. In the
parlor on the other side of the door a man’s voice spoke softly and the
door opened. Louise just had time to conceal herself in a little opening
beneath the stairway when Mary Hardy, accompanied by her young man, came into
the little dark room.</p>
<p>For an hour Louise sat on the floor in the darkness and listened. Without words
Mary Hardy, with the aid of the man who had come to spend the evening with her,
brought to the country girl a knowledge of men and women. Putting her head down
until she was curled into a little ball she lay perfectly still. It seemed to
her that by some strange impulse of the gods, a great gift had been brought to
Mary Hardy and she could not understand the older woman’s determined
protest.</p>
<p>The young man took Mary Hardy into his arms and kissed her. When she struggled
and laughed, he but held her the more tightly. For an hour the contest between
them went on and then they went back into the parlor and Louise escaped up the
stairs. “I hope you were quiet out there. You must not disturb the little
mouse at her studies,” she heard Harriet saying to her sister as she
stood by her own door in the hallway above.</p>
<p>Louise wrote a note to John Hardy and late that night, when all in the house
were asleep, she crept downstairs and slipped it under his door. She was afraid
that if she did not do the thing at once her courage would fail. In the note
she tried to be quite definite about what she wanted. “I want someone to
love me and I want to love someone,” she wrote. “If you are the one
for me I want you to come into the orchard at night and make a noise under my
window. It will be easy for me to crawl down over the shed and come to you. I
am thinking about it all the time, so if you are to come at all you must come
soon.”</p>
<p>For a long time Louise did not know what would be the outcome of her bold
attempt to secure for herself a lover. In a way she still did not know whether
or not she wanted him to come. Sometimes it seemed to her that to be held
tightly and kissed was the whole secret of life, and then a new impulse came
and she was terribly afraid. The age-old woman’s desire to be possessed
had taken possession of her, but so vague was her notion of life that it seemed
to her just the touch of John Hardy’s hand upon her own hand would
satisfy. She wondered if he would understand that. At the table next day while
Albert Hardy talked and the two girls whispered and laughed, she did not look
at John but at the table and as soon as possible escaped. In the evening she
went out of the house until she was sure he had taken the wood to her room and
gone away. When after several evenings of intense listening she heard no call
from the darkness in the orchard, she was half beside herself with grief and
decided that for her there was no way to break through the wall that had shut
her off from the joy of life.</p>
<p>And then on a Monday evening two or three weeks after the writing of the note,
John Hardy came for her. Louise had so entirely given up the thought of his
coming that for a long time she did not hear the call that came up from the
orchard. On the Friday evening before, as she was being driven back to the farm
for the week-end by one of the hired men, she had on an impulse done a thing
that had startled her, and as John Hardy stood in the darkness below and called
her name softly and insistently, she walked about in her room and wondered what
new impulse had led her to commit so ridiculous an act.</p>
<p>The farm hand, a young fellow with black curly hair, had come for her somewhat
late on that Friday evening and they drove home in the darkness. Louise, whose
mind was filled with thoughts of John Hardy, tried to make talk but the country
boy was embarrassed and would say nothing. Her mind began to review the
loneliness of her childhood and she remembered with a pang the sharp new
loneliness that had just come to her. “I hate everyone,” she cried
suddenly, and then broke forth into a tirade that frightened her escort.
“I hate father and the old man Hardy, too,” she declared
vehemently. “I get my lessons there in the school in town but I hate that
also.”</p>
<p>Louise frightened the farm hand still more by turning and putting her cheek
down upon his shoulder. Vaguely she hoped that he like that young man who had
stood in the darkness with Mary would put his arms about her and kiss her, but
the country boy was only alarmed. He struck the horse with the whip and began
to whistle. “The road is rough, eh?” he said loudly. Louise was so
angry that reaching up she snatched his hat from his head and threw it into the
road. When he jumped out of the buggy and went to get it, she drove off and
left him to walk the rest of the way back to the farm.</p>
<p>Louise Bentley took John Hardy to be her lover. That was not what she wanted
but it was so the young man had interpreted her approach to him, and so anxious
was she to achieve something else that she made no resistance. When after a few
months they were both afraid that she was about to become a mother, they went
one evening to the county seat and were married. For a few months they lived in
the Hardy house and then took a house of their own. All during the first year
Louise tried to make her husband understand the vague and intangible hunger
that had led to the writing of the note and that was still unsatisfied. Again
and again she crept into his arms and tried to talk of it, but always without
success. Filled with his own notions of love between men and women, he did not
listen but began to kiss her upon the lips. That confused her so that in the
end she did not want to be kissed. She did not know what she wanted.</p>
<p>When the alarm that had tricked them into marriage proved to be groundless, she
was angry and said bitter, hurtful things. Later when her son David was born,
she could not nurse him and did not know whether she wanted him or not.
Sometimes she stayed in the room with him all day, walking about and
occasionally creeping close to touch him tenderly with her hands, and then
other days came when she did not want to see or be near the tiny bit of
humanity that had come into the house. When John Hardy reproached her for her
cruelty, she laughed. “It is a man child and will get what it wants
anyway,” she said sharply. “Had it been a woman child there is
nothing in the world I would not have done for it.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap10"></SPAN>TERROR</h2>
<h3>PART FOUR</h3>
<p>When David Hardy was a tall boy of fifteen, he, like his mother, had an
adventure that changed the whole current of his life and sent him out of his
quiet corner into the world. The shell of the circumstances of his life was
broken and he was compelled to start forth. He left Winesburg and no one there
ever saw him again. After his disappearance, his mother and grandfather both
died and his father became very rich. He spent much money in trying to locate
his son, but that is no part of this story.</p>
<p>It was in the late fall of an unusual year on the Bentley farms. Everywhere the
crops had been heavy. That spring, Jesse had bought part of a long strip of
black swamp land that lay in the valley of Wine Creek. He got the land at a low
price but had spent a large sum of money to improve it. Great ditches had to be
dug and thousands of tile laid. Neighboring farmers shook their heads over the
expense. Some of them laughed and hoped that Jesse would lose heavily by the
venture, but the old man went silently on with the work and said nothing.</p>
<p>When the land was drained he planted it to cabbages and onions, and again the
neighbors laughed. The crop was, however, enormous and brought high prices. In
the one year Jesse made enough money to pay for all the cost of preparing the
land and had a surplus that enabled him to buy two more farms. He was exultant
and could not conceal his delight. For the first time in all the history of his
ownership of the farms, he went among his men with a smiling face.</p>
<p>Jesse bought a great many new machines for cutting down the cost of labor and
all of the remaining acres in the strip of black fertile swamp land. One day he
went into Winesburg and bought a bicycle and a new suit of clothes for David
and he gave his two sisters money with which to go to a religious convention at
Cleveland, Ohio.</p>
<p>In the fall of that year when the frost came and the trees in the forests along
Wine Creek were golden brown, David spent every moment when he did not have to
attend school, out in the open. Alone or with other boys he went every
afternoon into the woods to gather nuts. The other boys of the countryside,
most of them sons of laborers on the Bentley farms, had guns with which they
went hunting rabbits and squirrels, but David did not go with them. He made
himself a sling with rubber bands and a forked stick and went off by himself to
gather nuts. As he went about thoughts came to him. He realized that he was
almost a man and wondered what he would do in life, but before they came to
anything, the thoughts passed and he was a boy again. One day he killed a
squirrel that sat on one of the lower branches of a tree and chattered at him.
Home he ran with the squirrel in his hand. One of the Bentley sisters cooked
the little animal and he ate it with great gusto. The skin he tacked on a board
and suspended the board by a string from his bedroom window.</p>
<p>That gave his mind a new turn. After that he never went into the woods without
carrying the sling in his pocket and he spent hours shooting at imaginary
animals concealed among the brown leaves in the trees. Thoughts of his coming
manhood passed and he was content to be a boy with a boy’s impulses.</p>
<p>One Saturday morning when he was about to set off for the woods with the sling
in his pocket and a bag for nuts on his shoulder, his grandfather stopped him.
In the eyes of the old man was the strained serious look that always a little
frightened David. At such times Jesse Bentley’s eyes did not look
straight ahead but wavered and seemed to be looking at nothing. Something like
an invisible curtain appeared to have come between the man and all the rest of
the world. “I want you to come with me,” he said briefly, and his
eyes looked over the boy’s head into the sky. “We have something
important to do today. You may bring the bag for nuts if you wish. It does not
matter and anyway we will be going into the woods.”</p>
<p>Jesse and David set out from the Bentley farmhouse in the old phaeton that was
drawn by the white horse. When they had gone along in silence for a long way
they stopped at the edge of a field where a flock of sheep were grazing. Among
the sheep was a lamb that had been born out of season, and this David and his
grandfather caught and tied so tightly that it looked like a little white ball.
When they drove on again Jesse let David hold the lamb in his arms. “I
saw it yesterday and it put me in mind of what I have long wanted to do,”
he said, and again he looked away over the head of the boy with the wavering,
uncertain stare in his eyes.</p>
<p>After the feeling of exaltation that had come to the farmer as a result of his
successful year, another mood had taken possession of him. For a long time he
had been going about feeling very humble and prayerful. Again he walked alone
at night thinking of God and as he walked he again connected his own figure
with the figures of old days. Under the stars he knelt on the wet grass and
raised up his voice in prayer. Now he had decided that like the men whose
stories filled the pages of the Bible, he would make a sacrifice to God.
“I have been given these abundant crops and God has also sent me a boy
who is called David,” he whispered to himself. “Perhaps I should
have done this thing long ago.” He was sorry the idea had not come into
his mind in the days before his daughter Louise had been born and thought that
surely now when he had erected a pile of burning sticks in some lonely place in
the woods and had offered the body of a lamb as a burnt offering, God would
appear to him and give him a message.</p>
<p>More and more as he thought of the matter, he thought also of David and his
passionate self-love was partially forgotten. “It is time for the boy to
begin thinking of going out into the world and the message will be one
concerning him,” he decided. “God will make a pathway for him. He
will tell me what place David is to take in life and when he shall set out on
his journey. It is right that the boy should be there. If I am fortunate and an
angel of God should appear, David will see the beauty and glory of God made
manifest to man. It will make a true man of God of him also.”</p>
<p>In silence Jesse and David drove along the road until they came to that place
where Jesse had once before appealed to God and had frightened his grandson.
The morning had been bright and cheerful, but a cold wind now began to blow and
clouds hid the sun. When David saw the place to which they had come he began to
tremble with fright, and when they stopped by the bridge where the creek came
down from among the trees, he wanted to spring out of the phaeton and run away.</p>
<p>A dozen plans for escape ran through David’s head, but when Jesse stopped
the horse and climbed over the fence into the wood, he followed. “It is
foolish to be afraid. Nothing will happen,” he told himself as he went
along with the lamb in his arms. There was something in the helplessness of the
little animal held so tightly in his arms that gave him courage. He could feel
the rapid beating of the beast’s heart and that made his own heart beat
less rapidly. As he walked swiftly along behind his grandfather, he untied the
string with which the four legs of the lamb were fastened together. “If
anything happens we will run away together,” he thought.</p>
<p>In the woods, after they had gone a long way from the road, Jesse stopped in an
opening among the trees where a clearing, overgrown with small bushes, ran up
from the creek. He was still silent but began at once to erect a heap of dry
sticks which he presently set afire. The boy sat on the ground with the lamb in
his arms. His imagination began to invest every movement of the old man with
significance and he became every moment more afraid. “I must put the
blood of the lamb on the head of the boy,” Jesse muttered when the sticks
had begun to blaze greedily, and taking a long knife from his pocket he turned
and walked rapidly across the clearing toward David.</p>
<p>Terror seized upon the soul of the boy. He was sick with it. For a moment he
sat perfectly still and then his body stiffened and he sprang to his feet. His
face became as white as the fleece of the lamb that, now finding itself
suddenly released, ran down the hill. David ran also. Fear made his feet fly.
Over the low bushes and logs he leaped frantically. As he ran he put his hand
into his pocket and took out the branched stick from which the sling for
shooting squirrels was suspended. When he came to the creek that was shallow
and splashed down over the stones, he dashed into the water and turned to look
back, and when he saw his grandfather still running toward him with the long
knife held tightly in his hand he did not hesitate, but reaching down, selected
a stone and put it in the sling. With all his strength he drew back the heavy
rubber bands and the stone whistled through the air. It hit Jesse, who had
entirely forgotten the boy and was pursuing the lamb, squarely in the head.
With a groan he pitched forward and fell almost at the boy’s feet. When
David saw that he lay still and that he was apparently dead, his fright
increased immeasurably. It became an insane panic.</p>
<p>With a cry he turned and ran off through the woods weeping convulsively.
“I don’t care—I killed him, but I don’t care,” he
sobbed. As he ran on and on he decided suddenly that he would never go back
again to the Bentley farms or to the town of Winesburg. “I have killed
the man of God and now I will myself be a man and go into the world,” he
said stoutly as he stopped running and walked rapidly down a road that followed
the windings of Wine Creek as it ran through fields and forests into the west.</p>
<p>On the ground by the creek Jesse Bentley moved uneasily about. He groaned and
opened his eyes. For a long time he lay perfectly still and looked at the sky.
When at last he got to his feet, his mind was confused and he was not surprised
by the boy’s disappearance. By the roadside he sat down on a log and
began to talk about God. That is all they ever got out of him. Whenever
David’s name was mentioned he looked vaguely at the sky and said that a
messenger from God had taken the boy. “It happened because I was too
greedy for glory,” he declared, and would have no more to say in the
matter.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap11"></SPAN>A MAN OF IDEAS</h2>
<p>He lived with his mother, a grey, silent woman with a peculiar ashy complexion.
The house in which they lived stood in a little grove of trees beyond where the
main street of Winesburg crossed Wine Creek. His name was Joe Welling, and his
father had been a man of some dignity in the community, a lawyer, and a member
of the state legislature at Columbus. Joe himself was small of body and in his
character unlike anyone else in town. He was like a tiny little volcano that
lies silent for days and then suddenly spouts fire. No, he wasn’t like
that—he was like a man who is subject to fits, one who walks among his
fellow men inspiring fear because a fit may come upon him suddenly and blow him
away into a strange uncanny physical state in which his eyes roll and his legs
and arms jerk. He was like that, only that the visitation that descended upon
Joe Welling was a mental and not a physical thing. He was beset by ideas and in
the throes of one of his ideas was uncontrollable. Words rolled and tumbled
from his mouth. A peculiar smile came upon his lips. The edges of his teeth
that were tipped with gold glistened in the light. Pouncing upon a bystander he
began to talk. For the bystander there was no escape. The excited man breathed
into his face, peered into his eyes, pounded upon his chest with a shaking
forefinger, demanded, compelled attention.</p>
<p>In those days the Standard Oil Company did not deliver oil to the consumer in
big wagons and motor trucks as it does now, but delivered instead to retail
grocers, hardware stores, and the like. Joe was the Standard Oil agent in
Winesburg and in several towns up and down the railroad that went through
Winesburg. He collected bills, booked orders, and did other things. His father,
the legislator, had secured the job for him.</p>
<p>In and out of the stores of Winesburg went Joe Welling—silent,
excessively polite, intent upon his business. Men watched him with eyes in
which lurked amusement tempered by alarm. They were waiting for him to break
forth, preparing to flee. Although the seizures that came upon him were
harmless enough, they could not be laughed away. They were overwhelming.
Astride an idea, Joe was overmastering. His personality became gigantic. It
overrode the man to whom he talked, swept him away, swept all away, all who
stood within sound of his voice.</p>
<p>In Sylvester West’s Drug Store stood four men who were talking of horse
racing. Wesley Moyer’s stallion, Tony Tip, was to race at the June
meeting at Tiffin, Ohio, and there was a rumor that he would meet the stiffest
competition of his career. It was said that Pop Geers, the great racing driver,
would himself be there. A doubt of the success of Tony Tip hung heavy in the
air of Winesburg.</p>
<p>Into the drug store came Joe Welling, brushing the screen door violently aside.
With a strange absorbed light in his eyes he pounced upon Ed Thomas, he who
knew Pop Geers and whose opinion of Tony Tip’s chances was worth
considering.</p>
<p>“The water is up in Wine Creek,” cried Joe Welling with the air of
Pheidippides bringing news of the victory of the Greeks in the struggle at
Marathon. His finger beat a tattoo upon Ed Thomas’s broad chest.
“By Trunion bridge it is within eleven and a half inches of the
flooring,” he went on, the words coming quickly and with a little
whistling noise from between his teeth. An expression of helpless annoyance
crept over the faces of the four.</p>
<p>“I have my facts correct. Depend upon that. I went to Sinnings’
Hardware Store and got a rule. Then I went back and measured. I could hardly
believe my own eyes. It hasn’t rained you see for ten days. At first I
didn’t know what to think. Thoughts rushed through my head. I thought of
subterranean passages and springs. Down under the ground went my mind, delving
about. I sat on the floor of the bridge and rubbed my head. There wasn’t
a cloud in the sky, not one. Come out into the street and you’ll see.
There wasn’t a cloud. There isn’t a cloud now. Yes, there was a
cloud. I don’t want to keep back any facts. There was a cloud in the west
down near the horizon, a cloud no bigger than a man’s hand.</p>
<p>“Not that I think that has anything to do with it. There it is, you see.
You understand how puzzled I was.</p>
<p>“Then an idea came to me. I laughed. You’ll laugh, too. Of course
it rained over in Medina County. That’s interesting, eh? If we had no
trains, no mails, no telegraph, we would know that it rained over in Medina
County. That’s where Wine Creek comes from. Everyone knows that. Little
old Wine Creek brought us the news. That’s interesting. I laughed. I
thought I’d tell you—it’s interesting, eh?”</p>
<p>Joe Welling turned and went out at the door. Taking a book from his pocket, he
stopped and ran a finger down one of the pages. Again he was absorbed in his
duties as agent of the Standard Oil Company. “Hern’s Grocery will
be getting low on coal oil. I’ll see them,” he muttered, hurrying
along the street, and bowing politely to the right and left at the people
walking past.</p>
<p>When George Willard went to work for the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i> he was besieged
by Joe Welling. Joe envied the boy. It seemed to him that he was meant by
Nature to be a reporter on a newspaper. “It is what I should be doing,
there is no doubt of that,” he declared, stopping George Willard on the
sidewalk before Daugherty’s Feed Store. His eyes began to glisten and his
forefinger to tremble. “Of course I make more money with the Standard Oil
Company and I’m only telling you,” he added. “I’ve got
nothing against you but I should have your place. I could do the work at odd
moments. Here and there I would run finding out things you’ll never
see.”</p>
<p>Becoming more excited Joe Welling crowded the young reporter against the front
of the feed store. He appeared to be lost in thought, rolling his eyes about
and running a thin nervous hand through his hair. A smile spread over his face
and his gold teeth glittered. “You get out your note book,” he
commanded. “You carry a little pad of paper in your pocket, don’t
you? I knew you did. Well, you set this down. I thought of it the other day.
Let’s take decay. Now what is decay? It’s fire. It burns up wood
and other things. You never thought of that? Of course not. This sidewalk here
and this feed store, the trees down the street there—they’re all on
fire. They’re burning up. Decay you see is always going on. It
doesn’t stop. Water and paint can’t stop it. If a thing is iron,
then what? It rusts, you see. That’s fire, too. The world is on fire.
Start your pieces in the paper that way. Just say in big letters <i>‘The
World Is On Fire.’</i> That will make ’em look up. They’ll
say you’re a smart one. I don’t care. I don’t envy you. I
just snatched that idea out of the air. I would make a newspaper hum. You got
to admit that.”</p>
<p>Turning quickly, Joe Welling walked rapidly away. When he had taken several
steps he stopped and looked back. “I’m going to stick to
you,” he said. “I’m going to make you a regular hummer. I
should start a newspaper myself, that’s what I should do. I’d be a
marvel. Everybody knows that.”</p>
<p>When George Willard had been for a year on the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i>, four
things happened to Joe Welling. His mother died, he came to live at the New
Willard House, he became involved in a love affair, and he organized the
Winesburg Baseball Club.</p>
<p>Joe organized the baseball club because he wanted to be a coach and in that
position he began to win the respect of his townsmen. “He is a
wonder,” they declared after Joe’s team had whipped the team from
Medina County. “He gets everybody working together. You just watch
him.”</p>
<p>Upon the baseball field Joe Welling stood by first base, his whole body
quivering with excitement. In spite of themselves all the players watched him
closely. The opposing pitcher became confused.</p>
<p>“Now! Now! Now! Now!” shouted the excited man. “Watch me!
Watch me! Watch my fingers! Watch my hands! Watch my feet! Watch my eyes!
Let’s work together here! Watch me! In me you see all the movements of
the game! Work with me! Work with me! Watch me! Watch me! Watch me!”</p>
<p>With runners of the Winesburg team on bases, Joe Welling became as one
inspired. Before they knew what had come over them, the base runners were
watching the man, edging off the bases, advancing, retreating, held as by an
invisible cord. The players of the opposing team also watched Joe. They were
fascinated. For a moment they watched and then, as though to break a spell that
hung over them, they began hurling the ball wildly about, and amid a series of
fierce animal-like cries from the coach, the runners of the Winesburg team
scampered home.</p>
<p>Joe Welling’s love affair set the town of Winesburg on edge. When it
began everyone whispered and shook his head. When people tried to laugh, the
laughter was forced and unnatural. Joe fell in love with Sarah King, a lean,
sad-looking woman who lived with her father and brother in a brick house that
stood opposite the gate leading to the Winesburg Cemetery.</p>
<p>The two Kings, Edward the father, and Tom the son, were not popular in
Winesburg. They were called proud and dangerous. They had come to Winesburg
from some place in the South and ran a cider mill on the Trunion Pike. Tom King
was reported to have killed a man before he came to Winesburg. He was
twenty-seven years old and rode about town on a grey pony. Also he had a long
yellow mustache that dropped down over his teeth, and always carried a heavy,
wicked-looking walking stick in his hand. Once he killed a dog with the stick.
The dog belonged to Win Pawsey, the shoe merchant, and stood on the sidewalk
wagging its tail. Tom King killed it with one blow. He was arrested and paid a
fine of ten dollars.</p>
<p>Old Edward King was small of stature and when he passed people in the street
laughed a queer unmirthful laugh. When he laughed he scratched his left elbow
with his right hand. The sleeve of his coat was almost worn through from the
habit. As he walked along the street, looking nervously about and laughing, he
seemed more dangerous than his silent, fierce-looking son.</p>
<p>When Sarah King began walking out in the evening with Joe Welling, people shook
their heads in alarm. She was tall and pale and had dark rings under her eyes.
The couple looked ridiculous together. Under the trees they walked and Joe
talked. His passionate eager protestations of love, heard coming out of the
darkness by the cemetery wall, or from the deep shadows of the trees on the
hill that ran up to the Fair Grounds from Waterworks Pond, were repeated in the
stores. Men stood by the bar in the New Willard House laughing and talking of
Joe’s courtship. After the laughter came the silence. The Winesburg
baseball team, under his management, was winning game after game, and the town
had begun to respect him. Sensing a tragedy, they waited, laughing nervously.</p>
<p>Late on a Saturday afternoon the meeting between Joe Welling and the two Kings,
the anticipation of which had set the town on edge, took place in Joe
Welling’s room in the New Willard House. George Willard was a witness to
the meeting. It came about in this way:</p>
<p>When the young reporter went to his room after the evening meal he saw Tom King
and his father sitting in the half darkness in Joe’s room. The son had
the heavy walking stick in his hand and sat near the door. Old Edward King
walked nervously about, scratching his left elbow with his right hand. The
hallways were empty and silent.</p>
<p>George Willard went to his own room and sat down at his desk. He tried to write
but his hand trembled so that he could not hold the pen. He also walked
nervously up and down. Like the rest of the town of Winesburg he was perplexed
and knew not what to do.</p>
<p>It was seven-thirty and fast growing dark when Joe Welling came along the
station platform toward the New Willard House. In his arms he held a bundle of
weeds and grasses. In spite of the terror that made his body shake, George
Willard was amused at the sight of the small spry figure holding the grasses
and half running along the platform.</p>
<p>Shaking with fright and anxiety, the young reporter lurked in the hallway
outside the door of the room in which Joe Welling talked to the two Kings.
There had been an oath, the nervous giggle of old Edward King, and then
silence. Now the voice of Joe Welling, sharp and clear, broke forth. George
Willard began to laugh. He understood. As he had swept all men before him, so
now Joe Welling was carrying the two men in the room off their feet with a
tidal wave of words. The listener in the hall walked up and down, lost in
amazement.</p>
<p>Inside the room Joe Welling had paid no attention to the grumbled threat of Tom
King. Absorbed in an idea he closed the door and, lighting a lamp, spread the
handful of weeds and grasses upon the floor. “I’ve got something
here,” he announced solemnly. “I was going to tell George Willard
about it, let him make a piece out of it for the paper. I’m glad
you’re here. I wish Sarah were here also. I’ve been going to come
to your house and tell you of some of my ideas. They’re interesting.
Sarah wouldn’t let me. She said we’d quarrel. That’s
foolish.”</p>
<p>Running up and down before the two perplexed men, Joe Welling began to explain.
“Don’t you make a mistake now,” he cried. “This is
something big.” His voice was shrill with excitement. “You just
follow me, you’ll be interested. I know you will. Suppose
this—suppose all of the wheat, the corn, the oats, the peas, the
potatoes, were all by some miracle swept away. Now here we are, you see, in
this county. There is a high fence built all around us. We’ll suppose
that. No one can get over the fence and all the fruits of the earth are
destroyed, nothing left but these wild things, these grasses. Would we be done
for? I ask you that. Would we be done for?” Again Tom King growled and
for a moment there was silence in the room. Then again Joe plunged into the
exposition of his idea. “Things would go hard for a time. I admit that.
I’ve got to admit that. No getting around it. We’d be hard put to
it. More than one fat stomach would cave in. But they couldn’t down us. I
should say not.”</p>
<p>Tom King laughed good naturedly and the shivery, nervous laugh of Edward King
rang through the house. Joe Welling hurried on. “We’d begin, you
see, to breed up new vegetables and fruits. Soon we’d regain all we had
lost. Mind, I don’t say the new things would be the same as the old. They
wouldn’t. Maybe they’d be better, maybe not so good. That’s
interesting, eh? You can think about that. It starts your mind working, now
don’t it?”</p>
<p>In the room there was silence and then again old Edward King laughed nervously.
“Say, I wish Sarah was here,” cried Joe Welling. “Let’s
go up to your house. I want to tell her of this.”</p>
<p>There was a scraping of chairs in the room. It was then that George Willard
retreated to his own room. Leaning out at the window he saw Joe Welling going
along the street with the two Kings. Tom King was forced to take extraordinary
long strides to keep pace with the little man. As he strode along, he leaned
over, listening—absorbed, fascinated. Joe Welling again talked excitedly.
“Take milkweed now,” he cried. “A lot might be done with
milkweed, eh? It’s almost unbelievable. I want you to think about it. I
want you two to think about it. There would be a new vegetable kingdom you see.
It’s interesting, eh? It’s an idea. Wait till you see Sarah,
she’ll get the idea. She’ll be interested. Sarah is always
interested in ideas. You can’t be too smart for Sarah, now can you? Of
course you can’t. You know that.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap12"></SPAN>ADVENTURE</h2>
<p>Alice Hindman, a woman of twenty-seven when George Willard was a mere boy, had
lived in Winesburg all her life. She clerked in Winney’s Dry Goods Store
and lived with her mother, who had married a second husband.</p>
<p>Alice’s step-father was a carriage painter, and given to drink. His story
is an odd one. It will be worth telling some day.</p>
<p>At twenty-seven Alice was tall and somewhat slight. Her head was large and
overshadowed her body. Her shoulders were a little stooped and her hair and
eyes brown. She was very quiet but beneath a placid exterior a continual
ferment went on.</p>
<p>When she was a girl of sixteen and before she began to work in the store, Alice
had an affair with a young man. The young man, named Ned Currie, was older than
Alice. He, like George Willard, was employed on the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i> and
for a long time he went to see Alice almost every evening. Together the two
walked under the trees through the streets of the town and talked of what they
would do with their lives. Alice was then a very pretty girl and Ned Currie
took her into his arms and kissed her. He became excited and said things he did
not intend to say and Alice, betrayed by her desire to have something beautiful
come into her rather narrow life, also grew excited. She also talked. The outer
crust of her life, all of her natural diffidence and reserve, was torn away and
she gave herself over to the emotions of love. When, late in the fall of her
sixteenth year, Ned Currie went away to Cleveland where he hoped to get a place
on a city newspaper and rise in the world, she wanted to go with him. With a
trembling voice she told him what was in her mind. “I will work and you
can work,” she said. “I do not want to harness you to a needless
expense that will prevent your making progress. Don’t marry me now. We
will get along without that and we can be together. Even though we live in the
same house no one will say anything. In the city we will be unknown and people
will pay no attention to us.”</p>
<p>Ned Currie was puzzled by the determination and abandon of his sweetheart and
was also deeply touched. He had wanted the girl to become his mistress but
changed his mind. He wanted to protect and care for her. “You don’t
know what you’re talking about,” he said sharply; “you may be
sure I’ll let you do no such thing. As soon as I get a good job
I’ll come back. For the present you’ll have to stay here.
It’s the only thing we can do.”</p>
<p>On the evening before he left Winesburg to take up his new life in the city,
Ned Currie went to call on Alice. They walked about through the streets for an
hour and then got a rig from Wesley Moyer’s livery and went for a drive
in the country. The moon came up and they found themselves unable to talk. In
his sadness the young man forgot the resolutions he had made regarding his
conduct with the girl.</p>
<p>They got out of the buggy at a place where a long meadow ran down to the bank
of Wine Creek and there in the dim light became lovers. When at midnight they
returned to town they were both glad. It did not seem to them that anything
that could happen in the future could blot out the wonder and beauty of the
thing that had happened. “Now we will have to stick to each other,
whatever happens we will have to do that,” Ned Currie said as he left the
girl at her father’s door.</p>
<p>The young newspaper man did not succeed in getting a place on a Cleveland paper
and went west to Chicago. For a time he was lonely and wrote to Alice almost
every day. Then he was caught up by the life of the city; he began to make
friends and found new interests in life. In Chicago he boarded at a house where
there were several women. One of them attracted his attention and he forgot
Alice in Winesburg. At the end of a year he had stopped writing letters, and
only once in a long time, when he was lonely or when he went into one of the
city parks and saw the moon shining on the grass as it had shone that night on
the meadow by Wine Creek, did he think of her at all.</p>
<p>In Winesburg the girl who had been loved grew to be a woman. When she was
twenty-two years old her father, who owned a harness repair shop, died
suddenly. The harness maker was an old soldier, and after a few months his wife
received a widow’s pension. She used the first money she got to buy a
loom and became a weaver of carpets, and Alice got a place in Winney’s
store. For a number of years nothing could have induced her to believe that Ned
Currie would not in the end return to her.</p>
<p>She was glad to be employed because the daily round of toil in the store made
the time of waiting seem less long and uninteresting. She began to save money,
thinking that when she had saved two or three hundred dollars she would follow
her lover to the city and try if her presence would not win back his
affections.</p>
<p>Alice did not blame Ned Currie for what had happened in the moonlight in the
field, but felt that she could never marry another man. To her the thought of
giving to another what she still felt could belong only to Ned seemed
monstrous. When other young men tried to attract her attention she would have
nothing to do with them. “I am his wife and shall remain his wife whether
he comes back or not,” she whispered to herself, and for all of her
willingness to support herself could not have understood the growing modern
idea of a woman’s owning herself and giving and taking for her own ends
in life.</p>
<p>Alice worked in the dry goods store from eight in the morning until six at
night and on three evenings a week went back to the store to stay from seven
until nine. As time passed and she became more and more lonely she began to
practice the devices common to lonely people. When at night she went upstairs
into her own room she knelt on the floor to pray and in her prayers whispered
things she wanted to say to her lover. She became attached to inanimate
objects, and because it was her own, could not bare to have anyone touch the
furniture of her room. The trick of saving money, begun for a purpose, was
carried on after the scheme of going to the city to find Ned Currie had been
given up. It became a fixed habit, and when she needed new clothes she did not
get them. Sometimes on rainy afternoons in the store she got out her bank book
and, letting it lie open before her, spent hours dreaming impossible dreams of
saving money enough so that the interest would support both herself and her
future husband.</p>
<p>“Ned always liked to travel about,” she thought. “I’ll
give him the chance. Some day when we are married and I can save both his money
and my own, we will be rich. Then we can travel together all over the
world.”</p>
<p>In the dry goods store weeks ran into months and months into years as Alice
waited and dreamed of her lover’s return. Her employer, a grey old man
with false teeth and a thin grey mustache that drooped down over his mouth, was
not given to conversation, and sometimes, on rainy days and in the winter when
a storm raged in Main Street, long hours passed when no customers came in.
Alice arranged and rearranged the stock. She stood near the front window where
she could look down the deserted street and thought of the evenings when she
had walked with Ned Currie and of what he had said. “We will have to
stick to each other now.” The words echoed and re-echoed through the mind
of the maturing woman. Tears came into her eyes. Sometimes when her employer
had gone out and she was alone in the store she put her head on the counter and
wept. “Oh, Ned, I am waiting,” she whispered over and over, and all
the time the creeping fear that he would never come back grew stronger within
her.</p>
<p>In the spring when the rains have passed and before the long hot days of summer
have come, the country about Winesburg is delightful. The town lies in the
midst of open fields, but beyond the fields are pleasant patches of woodlands.
In the wooded places are many little cloistered nooks, quiet places where
lovers go to sit on Sunday afternoons. Through the trees they look out across
the fields and see farmers at work about the barns or people driving up and
down on the roads. In the town bells ring and occasionally a train passes,
looking like a toy thing in the distance.</p>
<p>For several years after Ned Currie went away Alice did not go into the wood
with the other young people on Sunday, but one day after he had been gone for
two or three years and when her loneliness seemed unbearable, she put on her
best dress and set out. Finding a little sheltered place from which she could
see the town and a long stretch of the fields, she sat down. Fear of age and
ineffectuality took possession of her. She could not sit still, and arose. As
she stood looking out over the land something, perhaps the thought of never
ceasing life as it expresses itself in the flow of the seasons, fixed her mind
on the passing years. With a shiver of dread, she realized that for her the
beauty and freshness of youth had passed. For the first time she felt that she
had been cheated. She did not blame Ned Currie and did not know what to blame.
Sadness swept over her. Dropping to her knees, she tried to pray, but instead
of prayers words of protest came to her lips. “It is not going to come to
me. I will never find happiness. Why do I tell myself lies?” she cried,
and an odd sense of relief came with this, her first bold attempt to face the
fear that had become a part of her everyday life.</p>
<p>In the year when Alice Hindman became twenty-five two things happened to
disturb the dull uneventfulness of her days. Her mother married Bush Milton,
the carriage painter of Winesburg, and she herself became a member of the
Winesburg Methodist Church. Alice joined the church because she had become
frightened by the loneliness of her position in life. Her mother’s second
marriage had emphasized her isolation. “I am becoming old and queer. If
Ned comes he will not want me. In the city where he is living men are
perpetually young. There is so much going on that they do not have time to grow
old,” she told herself with a grim little smile, and went resolutely
about the business of becoming acquainted with people. Every Thursday evening
when the store had closed she went to a prayer meeting in the basement of the
church and on Sunday evening attended a meeting of an organization called The
Epworth League.</p>
<p>When Will Hurley, a middle-aged man who clerked in a drug store and who also
belonged to the church, offered to walk home with her she did not protest.
“Of course I will not let him make a practice of being with me, but if he
comes to see me once in a long time there can be no harm in that,” she
told herself, still determined in her loyalty to Ned Currie.</p>
<p>Without realizing what was happening, Alice was trying feebly at first, but
with growing determination, to get a new hold upon life. Beside the drug clerk
she walked in silence, but sometimes in the darkness as they went stolidly
along she put out her hand and touched softly the folds of his coat. When he
left her at the gate before her mother’s house she did not go indoors,
but stood for a moment by the door. She wanted to call to the drug clerk, to
ask him to sit with her in the darkness on the porch before the house, but was
afraid he would not understand. “It is not him that I want,” she
told herself; “I want to avoid being so much alone. If I am not careful I
will grow unaccustomed to being with people.”</p>
<hr />
<p>During the early fall of her twenty-seventh year a passionate restlessness took
possession of Alice. She could not bear to be in the company of the drug clerk,
and when, in the evening, he came to walk with her she sent him away. Her mind
became intensely active and when, weary from the long hours of standing behind
the counter in the store, she went home and crawled into bed, she could not
sleep. With staring eyes she looked into the darkness. Her imagination, like a
child awakened from long sleep, played about the room. Deep within her there
was something that would not be cheated by phantasies and that demanded some
definite answer from life.</p>
<p>Alice took a pillow into her arms and held it tightly against her breasts.
Getting out of bed, she arranged a blanket so that in the darkness it looked
like a form lying between the sheets and, kneeling beside the bed, she caressed
it, whispering words over and over, like a refrain. “Why doesn’t
something happen? Why am I left here alone?” she muttered. Although she
sometimes thought of Ned Currie, she no longer depended on him. Her desire had
grown vague. She did not want Ned Currie or any other man. She wanted to be
loved, to have something answer the call that was growing louder and louder
within her.</p>
<p>And then one night when it rained Alice had an adventure. It frightened and
confused her. She had come home from the store at nine and found the house
empty. Bush Milton had gone off to town and her mother to the house of a
neighbor. Alice went upstairs to her room and undressed in the darkness. For a
moment she stood by the window hearing the rain beat against the glass and then
a strange desire took possession of her. Without stopping to think of what she
intended to do, she ran downstairs through the dark house and out into the
rain. As she stood on the little grass plot before the house and felt the cold
rain on her body a mad desire to run naked through the streets took possession
of her.</p>
<p>She thought that the rain would have some creative and wonderful effect on her
body. Not for years had she felt so full of youth and courage. She wanted to
leap and run, to cry out, to find some other lonely human and embrace him. On
the brick sidewalk before the house a man stumbled homeward. Alice started to
run. A wild, desperate mood took possession of her. “What do I care who
it is. He is alone, and I will go to him,” she thought; and then without
stopping to consider the possible result of her madness, called softly.
“Wait!” she cried. “Don’t go away. Whoever you are, you
must wait.”</p>
<p>The man on the sidewalk stopped and stood listening. He was an old man and
somewhat deaf. Putting his hand to his mouth, he shouted. “What? What
say?” he called.</p>
<p>Alice dropped to the ground and lay trembling. She was so frightened at the
thought of what she had done that when the man had gone on his way she did not
dare get to her feet, but crawled on hands and knees through the grass to the
house. When she got to her own room she bolted the door and drew her dressing
table across the doorway. Her body shook as with a chill and her hands trembled
so that she had difficulty getting into her nightdress. When she got into bed
she buried her face in the pillow and wept brokenheartedly. “What is the
matter with me? I will do something dreadful if I am not careful,” she
thought, and turning her face to the wall, began trying to force herself to
face bravely the fact that many people must live and die alone, even in
Winesburg.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap13"></SPAN>RESPECTABILITY</h2>
<p>If you have lived in cities and have walked in the park on a summer afternoon,
you have perhaps seen, blinking in a corner of his iron cage, a huge, grotesque
kind of monkey, a creature with ugly, sagging, hairless skin below his eyes and
a bright purple underbody. This monkey is a true monster. In the completeness
of his ugliness he achieved a kind of perverted beauty. Children stopping
before the cage are fascinated, men turn away with an air of disgust, and women
linger for a moment, trying perhaps to remember which one of their male
acquaintances the thing in some faint way resembles.</p>
<p>Had you been in the earlier years of your life a citizen of the village of
Winesburg, Ohio, there would have been for you no mystery in regard to the
beast in his cage. “It is like Wash Williams,” you would have said.
“As he sits in the corner there, the beast is exactly like old Wash
sitting on the grass in the station yard on a summer evening after he has
closed his office for the night.”</p>
<p>Wash Williams, the telegraph operator of Winesburg, was the ugliest thing in
town. His girth was immense, his neck thin, his legs feeble. He was dirty.
Everything about him was unclean. Even the whites of his eyes looked soiled.</p>
<p>I go too fast. Not everything about Wash was unclean. He took care of his
hands. His fingers were fat, but there was something sensitive and shapely in
the hand that lay on the table by the instrument in the telegraph office. In
his youth Wash Williams had been called the best telegraph operator in the
state, and in spite of his degradement to the obscure office at Winesburg, he
was still proud of his ability.</p>
<p>Wash Williams did not associate with the men of the town in which he lived.
“I’ll have nothing to do with them,” he said, looking with
bleary eyes at the men who walked along the station platform past the telegraph
office. Up along Main Street he went in the evening to Ed Griffith’s
saloon, and after drinking unbelievable quantities of beer staggered off to his
room in the New Willard House and to his bed for the night.</p>
<p>Wash Williams was a man of courage. A thing had happened to him that made him
hate life, and he hated it wholeheartedly, with the abandon of a poet. First of
all, he hated women. “Bitches,” he called them. His feeling toward
men was somewhat different. He pitied them. “Does not every man let his
life be managed for him by some bitch or another?” he asked.</p>
<p>In Winesburg no attention was paid to Wash Williams and his hatred of his
fellows. Once Mrs. White, the banker’s wife, complained to the telegraph
company, saying that the office in Winesburg was dirty and smelled abominably,
but nothing came of her complaint. Here and there a man respected the operator.
Instinctively the man felt in him a glowing resentment of something he had not
the courage to resent. When Wash walked through the streets such a one had an
instinct to pay him homage, to raise his hat or to bow before him. The
superintendent who had supervision over the telegraph operators on the railroad
that went through Winesburg felt that way. He had put Wash into the obscure
office at Winesburg to avoid discharging him, and he meant to keep him there.
When he received the letter of complaint from the banker’s wife, he tore
it up and laughed unpleasantly. For some reason he thought of his own wife as
he tore up the letter.</p>
<p>Wash Williams once had a wife. When he was still a young man he married a woman
at Dayton, Ohio. The woman was tall and slender and had blue eyes and yellow
hair. Wash was himself a comely youth. He loved the woman with a love as
absorbing as the hatred he later felt for all women.</p>
<p>In all of Winesburg there was but one person who knew the story of the thing
that had made ugly the person and the character of Wash Williams. He once told
the story to George Willard and the telling of the tale came about in this way:</p>
<p>George Willard went one evening to walk with Belle Carpenter, a trimmer of
women’s hats who worked in a millinery shop kept by Mrs. Kate McHugh. The
young man was not in love with the woman, who, in fact, had a suitor who worked
as bartender in Ed Griffith’s saloon, but as they walked about under the
trees they occasionally embraced. The night and their own thoughts had aroused
something in them. As they were returning to Main Street they passed the little
lawn beside the railroad station and saw Wash Williams apparently asleep on the
grass beneath a tree. On the next evening the operator and George Willard
walked out together. Down the railroad they went and sat on a pile of decaying
railroad ties beside the tracks. It was then that the operator told the young
reporter his story of hate.</p>
<p>Perhaps a dozen times George Willard and the strange, shapeless man who lived
at his father’s hotel had been on the point of talking. The young man
looked at the hideous, leering face staring about the hotel dining room and was
consumed with curiosity. Something he saw lurking in the staring eyes told him
that the man who had nothing to say to others had nevertheless something to say
to him. On the pile of railroad ties on the summer evening, he waited
expectantly. When the operator remained silent and seemed to have changed his
mind about talking, he tried to make conversation. “Were you ever
married, Mr. Williams?” he began. “I suppose you were and your wife
is dead, is that it?”</p>
<p>Wash Williams spat forth a succession of vile oaths. “Yes, she is
dead,” he agreed. “She is dead as all women are dead. She is a
living-dead thing, walking in the sight of men and making the earth foul by her
presence.” Staring into the boy’s eyes, the man became purple with
rage. “Don’t have fool notions in your head,” he commanded.
“My wife, she is dead; yes, surely. I tell you, all women are dead, my
mother, your mother, that tall dark woman who works in the millinery store and
with whom I saw you walking about yesterday—all of them, they are all
dead. I tell you there is something rotten about them. I was married, sure. My
wife was dead before she married me, she was a foul thing come out a woman more
foul. She was a thing sent to make life unbearable to me. I was a fool, do you
see, as you are now, and so I married this woman. I would like to see men a
little begin to understand women. They are sent to prevent men making the world
worth while. It is a trick in Nature. Ugh! They are creeping, crawling,
squirming things, they with their soft hands and their blue eyes. The sight of
a woman sickens me. Why I don’t kill every woman I see I don’t
know.”</p>
<p>Half frightened and yet fascinated by the light burning in the eyes of the
hideous old man, George Willard listened, afire with curiosity. Darkness came
on and he leaned forward trying to see the face of the man who talked. When, in
the gathering darkness, he could no longer see the purple, bloated face and the
burning eyes, a curious fancy came to him. Wash Williams talked in low even
tones that made his words seem the more terrible. In the darkness the young
reporter found himself imagining that he sat on the railroad ties beside a
comely young man with black hair and black shining eyes. There was something
almost beautiful in the voice of Wash Williams, the hideous, telling his story
of hate.</p>
<p>The telegraph operator of Winesburg, sitting in the darkness on the railroad
ties, had become a poet. Hatred had raised him to that elevation. “It is
because I saw you kissing the lips of that Belle Carpenter that I tell you my
story,” he said. “What happened to me may next happen to you. I
want to put you on your guard. Already you may be having dreams in your head. I
want to destroy them.”</p>
<p>Wash Williams began telling the story of his married life with the tall blonde
girl with the blue eyes whom he had met when he was a young operator at Dayton,
Ohio. Here and there his story was touched with moments of beauty intermingled
with strings of vile curses. The operator had married the daughter of a dentist
who was the youngest of three sisters. On his marriage day, because of his
ability, he was promoted to a position as dispatcher at an increased salary and
sent to an office at Columbus, Ohio. There he settled down with his young wife
and began buying a house on the installment plan.</p>
<p>The young telegraph operator was madly in love. With a kind of religious fervor
he had managed to go through the pitfalls of his youth and to remain virginal
until after his marriage. He made for George Willard a picture of his life in
the house at Columbus, Ohio, with the young wife. “In the garden back of
our house we planted vegetables,” he said, “you know, peas and corn
and such things. We went to Columbus in early March and as soon as the days
became warm I went to work in the garden. With a spade I turned up the black
ground while she ran about laughing and pretending to be afraid of the worms I
uncovered. Late in April came the planting. In the little paths among the seed
beds she stood holding a paper bag in her hand. The bag was filled with seeds.
A few at a time she handed me the seeds that I might thrust them into the warm,
soft ground.”</p>
<p>For a moment there was a catch in the voice of the man talking in the darkness.
“I loved her,” he said. “I don’t claim not to be a
fool. I love her yet. There in the dusk in the spring evening I crawled along
the black ground to her feet and groveled before her. I kissed her shoes and
the ankles above her shoes. When the hem of her garment touched my face I
trembled. When after two years of that life I found she had managed to acquire
three other lovers who came regularly to our house when I was away at work, I
didn’t want to touch them or her. I just sent her home to her mother and
said nothing. There was nothing to say. I had four hundred dollars in the bank
and I gave her that. I didn’t ask her reasons. I didn’t say
anything. When she had gone I cried like a silly boy. Pretty soon I had a
chance to sell the house and I sent that money to her.”</p>
<p>Wash Williams and George Willard arose from the pile of railroad ties and
walked along the tracks toward town. The operator finished his tale quickly,
breathlessly.</p>
<p>“Her mother sent for me,” he said. “She wrote me a letter and
asked me to come to their house at Dayton. When I got there it was evening
about this time.”</p>
<p>Wash Williams’ voice rose to a half scream. “I sat in the parlor of
that house two hours. Her mother took me in there and left me. Their house was
stylish. They were what is called respectable people. There were plush chairs
and a couch in the room. I was trembling all over. I hated the men I thought
had wronged her. I was sick of living alone and wanted her back. The longer I
waited the more raw and tender I became. I thought that if she came in and just
touched me with her hand I would perhaps faint away. I ached to forgive and
forget.”</p>
<p>Wash Williams stopped and stood staring at George Willard. The boy’s body
shook as from a chill. Again the man’s voice became soft and low.
“She came into the room naked,” he went on. “Her mother did
that. While I sat there she was taking the girl’s clothes off, perhaps
coaxing her to do it. First I heard voices at the door that led into a little
hallway and then it opened softly. The girl was ashamed and stood perfectly
still staring at the floor. The mother didn’t come into the room. When
she had pushed the girl in through the door she stood in the hallway waiting,
hoping we would—well, you see—waiting.”</p>
<p>George Willard and the telegraph operator came into the main street of
Winesburg. The lights from the store windows lay bright and shining on the
sidewalks. People moved about laughing and talking. The young reporter felt ill
and weak. In imagination, he also became old and shapeless. “I
didn’t get the mother killed,” said Wash Williams, staring up and
down the street. “I struck her once with a chair and then the neighbors
came in and took it away. She screamed so loud you see. I won’t ever have
a chance to kill her now. She died of a fever a month after that
happened.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap14"></SPAN>THE THINKER</h2>
<p>The house in which Seth Richmond of Winesburg lived with his mother had been at
one time the show place of the town, but when young Seth lived there its glory
had become somewhat dimmed. The huge brick house which Banker White had built
on Buckeye Street had overshadowed it. The Richmond place was in a little
valley far out at the end of Main Street. Farmers coming into town by a dusty
road from the south passed by a grove of walnut trees, skirted the Fair Ground
with its high board fence covered with advertisements, and trotted their horses
down through the valley past the Richmond place into town. As much of the
country north and south of Winesburg was devoted to fruit and berry raising,
Seth saw wagon-loads of berry pickers—boys, girls, and women—going
to the fields in the morning and returning covered with dust in the evening.
The chattering crowd, with their rude jokes cried out from wagon to wagon,
sometimes irritated him sharply. He regretted that he also could not laugh
boisterously, shout meaningless jokes and make of himself a figure in the
endless stream of moving, giggling activity that went up and down the road.</p>
<p>The Richmond house was built of limestone, and, although it was said in the
village to have become run down, had in reality grown more beautiful with every
passing year. Already time had begun a little to color the stone, lending a
golden richness to its surface and in the evening or on dark days touching the
shaded places beneath the eaves with wavering patches of browns and blacks.</p>
<p>The house had been built by Seth’s grandfather, a stone quarryman, and
it, together with the stone quarries on Lake Erie eighteen miles to the north,
had been left to his son, Clarence Richmond, Seth’s father. Clarence
Richmond, a quiet passionate man extraordinarily admired by his neighbors, had
been killed in a street fight with the editor of a newspaper in Toledo, Ohio.
The fight concerned the publication of Clarence Richmond’s name coupled
with that of a woman school teacher, and as the dead man had begun the row by
firing upon the editor, the effort to punish the slayer was unsuccessful. After
the quarryman’s death it was found that much of the money left to him had
been squandered in speculation and in insecure investments made through the
influence of friends.</p>
<p>Left with but a small income, Virginia Richmond had settled down to a retired
life in the village and to the raising of her son. Although she had been deeply
moved by the death of the husband and father, she did not at all believe the
stories concerning him that ran about after his death. To her mind, the
sensitive, boyish man whom all had instinctively loved, was but an unfortunate,
a being too fine for everyday life. “You’ll be hearing all sorts of
stories, but you are not to believe what you hear,” she said to her son.
“He was a good man, full of tenderness for everyone, and should not have
tried to be a man of affairs. No matter how much I were to plan and dream of
your future, I could not imagine anything better for you than that you turn out
as good a man as your father.”</p>
<p>Several years after the death of her husband, Virginia Richmond had become
alarmed at the growing demands upon her income and had set herself to the task
of increasing it. She had learned stenography and through the influence of her
husband’s friends got the position of court stenographer at the county
seat. There she went by train each morning during the sessions of the court,
and when no court sat, spent her days working among the rosebushes in her
garden. She was a tall, straight figure of a woman with a plain face and a
great mass of brown hair.</p>
<p>In the relationship between Seth Richmond and his mother, there was a quality
that even at eighteen had begun to color all of his traffic with men. An almost
unhealthy respect for the youth kept the mother for the most part silent in his
presence. When she did speak sharply to him he had only to look steadily into
her eyes to see dawning there the puzzled look he had already noticed in the
eyes of others when he looked at them.</p>
<p>The truth was that the son thought with remarkable clearness and the mother did
not. She expected from all people certain conventional reactions to life. A boy
was your son, you scolded him and he trembled and looked at the floor. When you
had scolded enough he wept and all was forgiven. After the weeping and when he
had gone to bed, you crept into his room and kissed him.</p>
<p>Virginia Richmond could not understand why her son did not do these things.
After the severest reprimand, he did not tremble and look at the floor but
instead looked steadily at her, causing uneasy doubts to invade her mind. As
for creeping into his room—after Seth had passed his fifteenth year, she
would have been half afraid to do anything of the kind.</p>
<p>Once when he was a boy of sixteen, Seth in company with two other boys ran away
from home. The three boys climbed into the open door of an empty freight car
and rode some forty miles to a town where a fair was being held. One of the
boys had a bottle filled with a combination of whiskey and blackberry wine, and
the three sat with legs dangling out of the car door drinking from the bottle.
Seth’s two companions sang and waved their hands to idlers about the
stations of the towns through which the train passed. They planned raids upon
the baskets of farmers who had come with their families to the fair. “We
will live like kings and won’t have to spend a penny to see the fair and
horse races,” they declared boastfully.</p>
<p>After the disappearance of Seth, Virginia Richmond walked up and down the floor
of her home filled with vague alarms. Although on the next day she discovered,
through an inquiry made by the town marshal, on what adventure the boys had
gone, she could not quiet herself. All through the night she lay awake hearing
the clock tick and telling herself that Seth, like his father, would come to a
sudden and violent end. So determined was she that the boy should this time
feel the weight of her wrath that, although she would not allow the marshal to
interfere with his adventure, she got out a pencil and paper and wrote down a
series of sharp, stinging reproofs she intended to pour out upon him. The
reproofs she committed to memory, going about the garden and saying them aloud
like an actor memorizing his part.</p>
<p>And when, at the end of the week, Seth returned, a little weary and with coal
soot in his ears and about his eyes, she again found herself unable to reprove
him. Walking into the house he hung his cap on a nail by the kitchen door and
stood looking steadily at her. “I wanted to turn back within an hour
after we had started,” he explained. “I didn’t know what to
do. I knew you would be bothered, but I knew also that if I didn’t go on
I would be ashamed of myself. I went through with the thing for my own good. It
was uncomfortable, sleeping on wet straw, and two drunken Negroes came and
slept with us. When I stole a lunch basket out of a farmer’s wagon I
couldn’t help thinking of his children going all day without food. I was
sick of the whole affair, but I was determined to stick it out until the other
boys were ready to come back.”</p>
<p>“I’m glad you did stick it out,” replied the mother, half
resentfully, and kissing him upon the forehead pretended to busy herself with
the work about the house.</p>
<p>On a summer evening Seth Richmond went to the New Willard House to visit his
friend, George Willard. It had rained during the afternoon, but as he walked
through Main Street, the sky had partially cleared and a golden glow lit up the
west. Going around a corner, he turned in at the door of the hotel and began to
climb the stairway leading up to his friend’s room. In the hotel office
the proprietor and two traveling men were engaged in a discussion of politics.</p>
<p>On the stairway Seth stopped and listened to the voices of the men below. They
were excited and talked rapidly. Tom Willard was berating the traveling men.
“I am a Democrat but your talk makes me sick,” he said. “You
don’t understand McKinley. McKinley and Mark Hanna are friends. It is
impossible perhaps for your mind to grasp that. If anyone tells you that a
friendship can be deeper and bigger and more worth while than dollars and
cents, or even more worth while than state politics, you snicker and
laugh.”</p>
<p>The landlord was interrupted by one of the guests, a tall, grey-mustached man
who worked for a wholesale grocery house. “Do you think that I’ve
lived in Cleveland all these years without knowing Mark Hanna?” he
demanded. “Your talk is piffle. Hanna is after money and nothing else.
This McKinley is his tool. He has McKinley bluffed and don’t you forget
it.”</p>
<p>The young man on the stairs did not linger to hear the rest of the discussion,
but went on up the stairway and into the little dark hall. Something in the
voices of the men talking in the hotel office started a chain of thoughts in
his mind. He was lonely and had begun to think that loneliness was a part of
his character, something that would always stay with him. Stepping into a side
hall he stood by a window that looked into an alleyway. At the back of his shop
stood Abner Groff, the town baker. His tiny bloodshot eyes looked up and down
the alleyway. In his shop someone called the baker, who pretended not to hear.
The baker had an empty milk bottle in his hand and an angry sullen look in his
eyes.</p>
<p>In Winesburg, Seth Richmond was called the “deep one.”
“He’s like his father,” men said as he went through the
streets. “He’ll break out some of these days. You wait and
see.”</p>
<p>The talk of the town and the respect with which men and boys instinctively
greeted him, as all men greet silent people, had affected Seth Richmond’s
outlook on life and on himself. He, like most boys, was deeper than boys are
given credit for being, but he was not what the men of the town, and even his
mother, thought him to be. No great underlying purpose lay back of his habitual
silence, and he had no definite plan for his life. When the boys with whom he
associated were noisy and quarrelsome, he stood quietly at one side. With calm
eyes he watched the gesticulating lively figures of his companions. He
wasn’t particularly interested in what was going on, and sometimes
wondered if he would ever be particularly interested in anything. Now, as he
stood in the half-darkness by the window watching the baker, he wished that he
himself might become thoroughly stirred by something, even by the fits of
sullen anger for which Baker Groff was noted. “It would be better for me
if I could become excited and wrangle about politics like windy old Tom
Willard,” he thought, as he left the window and went again along the
hallway to the room occupied by his friend, George Willard.</p>
<p>George Willard was older than Seth Richmond, but in the rather odd friendship
between the two, it was he who was forever courting and the younger boy who was
being courted. The paper on which George worked had one policy. It strove to
mention by name in each issue, as many as possible of the inhabitants of the
village. Like an excited dog, George Willard ran here and there, noting on his
pad of paper who had gone on business to the county seat or had returned from a
visit to a neighboring village. All day he wrote little facts upon the pad.
“A. P. Wringlet had received a shipment of straw hats. Ed Byerbaum and
Tom Marshall were in Cleveland Friday. Uncle Tom Sinnings is building a new
barn on his place on the Valley Road.”</p>
<p>The idea that George Willard would some day become a writer had given him a
place of distinction in Winesburg, and to Seth Richmond he talked continually
of the matter, “It’s the easiest of all lives to live,” he
declared, becoming excited and boastful. “Here and there you go and there
is no one to boss you. Though you are in India or in the South Seas in a boat,
you have but to write and there you are. Wait till I get my name up and then
see what fun I shall have.”</p>
<p>In George Willard’s room, which had a window looking down into an
alleyway and one that looked across railroad tracks to Biff Carter’s
Lunch Room facing the railroad station, Seth Richmond sat in a chair and looked
at the floor. George Willard, who had been sitting for an hour idly playing
with a lead pencil, greeted him effusively. “I’ve been trying to
write a love story,” he explained, laughing nervously. Lighting a pipe he
began walking up and down the room. “I know what I’m going to do.
I’m going to fall in love. I’ve been sitting here and thinking it
over and I’m going to do it.”</p>
<p>As though embarrassed by his declaration, George went to a window and turning
his back to his friend leaned out. “I know who I’m going to fall in
love with,” he said sharply. “It’s Helen White. She is the
only girl in town with any ‘get-up’ to her.”</p>
<p>Struck with a new idea, young Willard turned and walked toward his visitor.
“Look here,” he said. “You know Helen White better than I do.
I want you to tell her what I said. You just get to talking to her and say that
I’m in love with her. See what she says to that. See how she takes it,
and then you come and tell me.”</p>
<p>Seth Richmond arose and went toward the door. The words of his comrade
irritated him unbearably. “Well, good-bye,” he said briefly.</p>
<p>George was amazed. Running forward he stood in the darkness trying to look into
Seth’s face. “What’s the matter? What are you going to do?
You stay here and let’s talk,” he urged.</p>
<p>A wave of resentment directed against his friend, the men of the town who were,
he thought, perpetually talking of nothing, and most of all, against his own
habit of silence, made Seth half desperate. “Aw, speak to her
yourself,” he burst forth and then, going quickly through the door,
slammed it sharply in his friend’s face. “I’m going to find
Helen White and talk to her, but not about him,” he muttered.</p>
<p>Seth went down the stairway and out at the front door of the hotel muttering
with wrath. Crossing a little dusty street and climbing a low iron railing, he
went to sit upon the grass in the station yard. George Willard he thought a
profound fool, and he wished that he had said so more vigorously. Although his
acquaintanceship with Helen White, the banker’s daughter, was outwardly
but casual, she was often the subject of his thoughts and he felt that she was
something private and personal to himself. “The busy fool with his love
stories,” he muttered, staring back over his shoulder at George
Willard’s room, “why does he never tire of his eternal
talking.”</p>
<p>It was berry harvest time in Winesburg and upon the station platform men and
boys loaded the boxes of red, fragrant berries into two express cars that stood
upon the siding. A June moon was in the sky, although in the west a storm
threatened, and no street lamps were lighted. In the dim light the figures of
the men standing upon the express truck and pitching the boxes in at the doors
of the cars were but dimly discernible. Upon the iron railing that protected
the station lawn sat other men. Pipes were lighted. Village jokes went back and
forth. Away in the distance a train whistled and the men loading the boxes into
the cars worked with renewed activity.</p>
<p>Seth arose from his place on the grass and went silently past the men perched
upon the railing and into Main Street. He had come to a resolution.
“I’ll get out of here,” he told himself. “What good am
I here? I’m going to some city and go to work. I’ll tell mother
about it tomorrow.”</p>
<p>Seth Richmond went slowly along Main Street, past Wacker’s Cigar Store
and the Town Hall, and into Buckeye Street. He was depressed by the thought
that he was not a part of the life in his own town, but the depression did not
cut deeply as he did not think of himself as at fault. In the heavy shadows of
a big tree before Doctor Welling’s house, he stopped and stood watching
half-witted Turk Smollet, who was pushing a wheelbarrow in the road. The old
man with his absurdly boyish mind had a dozen long boards on the wheelbarrow,
and, as he hurried along the road, balanced the load with extreme nicety.
“Easy there, Turk! Steady now, old boy!” the old man shouted to
himself, and laughed so that the load of boards rocked dangerously.</p>
<p>Seth knew Turk Smollet, the half dangerous old wood chopper whose peculiarities
added so much of color to the life of the village. He knew that when Turk got
into Main Street he would become the center of a whirlwind of cries and
comments, that in truth the old man was going far out of his way in order to
pass through Main Street and exhibit his skill in wheeling the boards.
“If George Willard were here, he’d have something to say,”
thought Seth. “George belongs to this town. He’d shout at Turk and
Turk would shout at him. They’d both be secretly pleased by what they had
said. It’s different with me. I don’t belong. I’ll not make a
fuss about it, but I’m going to get out of here.”</p>
<p>Seth stumbled forward through the half-darkness, feeling himself an outcast in
his own town. He began to pity himself, but a sense of the absurdity of his
thoughts made him smile. In the end he decided that he was simply old beyond
his years and not at all a subject for self-pity. “I’m made to go
to work. I may be able to make a place for myself by steady working, and I
might as well be at it,” he decided.</p>
<p>Seth went to the house of Banker White and stood in the darkness by the front
door. On the door hung a heavy brass knocker, an innovation introduced into the
village by Helen White’s mother, who had also organized a women’s
club for the study of poetry. Seth raised the knocker and let it fall. Its
heavy clatter sounded like a report from distant guns. “How awkward and
foolish I am,” he thought. “If Mrs. White comes to the door, I
won’t know what to say.”</p>
<p>It was Helen White who came to the door and found Seth standing at the edge of
the porch. Blushing with pleasure, she stepped forward, closing the door
softly. “I’m going to get out of town. I don’t know what
I’ll do, but I’m going to get out of here and go to work. I think
I’ll go to Columbus,” he said. “Perhaps I’ll get into
the State University down there. Anyway, I’m going. I’ll tell
mother tonight.” He hesitated and looked doubtfully about. “Perhaps
you wouldn’t mind coming to walk with me?”</p>
<p>Seth and Helen walked through the streets beneath the trees. Heavy clouds had
drifted across the face of the moon, and before them in the deep twilight went
a man with a short ladder upon his shoulder. Hurrying forward, the man stopped
at the street crossing and, putting the ladder against the wooden lamp-post,
lighted the village lights so that their way was half lighted, half darkened,
by the lamps and by the deepening shadows cast by the low-branched trees. In
the tops of the trees the wind began to play, disturbing the sleeping birds so
that they flew about calling plaintively. In the lighted space before one of
the lamps, two bats wheeled and circled, pursuing the gathering swarm of night
flies.</p>
<p>Since Seth had been a boy in knee trousers there had been a half expressed
intimacy between him and the maiden who now for the first time walked beside
him. For a time she had been beset with a madness for writing notes which she
addressed to Seth. He had found them concealed in his books at school and one
had been given him by a child met in the street, while several had been
delivered through the village post office.</p>
<p>The notes had been written in a round, boyish hand and had reflected a mind
inflamed by novel reading. Seth had not answered them, although he had been
moved and flattered by some of the sentences scrawled in pencil upon the
stationery of the banker’s wife. Putting them into the pocket of his
coat, he went through the street or stood by the fence in the school yard with
something burning at his side. He thought it fine that he should be thus
selected as the favorite of the richest and most attractive girl in town.</p>
<p>Helen and Seth stopped by a fence near where a low dark building faced the
street. The building had once been a factory for the making of barrel staves
but was now vacant. Across the street upon the porch of a house a man and woman
talked of their childhood, their voices coming dearly across to the
half-embarrassed youth and maiden. There was the sound of scraping chairs and
the man and woman came down the gravel path to a wooden gate. Standing outside
the gate, the man leaned over and kissed the woman. “For old times’
sake,” he said and, turning, walked rapidly away along the sidewalk.</p>
<p>“That’s Belle Turner,” whispered Helen, and put her hand
boldly into Seth’s hand. “I didn’t know she had a fellow. I
thought she was too old for that.” Seth laughed uneasily. The hand of the
girl was warm and a strange, dizzy feeling crept over him. Into his mind came a
desire to tell her something he had been determined not to tell. “George
Willard’s in love with you,” he said, and in spite of his agitation
his voice was low and quiet. “He’s writing a story, and he wants to
be in love. He wants to know how it feels. He wanted me to tell you and see
what you said.”</p>
<p>Again Helen and Seth walked in silence. They came to the garden surrounding the
old Richmond place and going through a gap in the hedge sat on a wooden bench
beneath a bush.</p>
<p>On the street as he walked beside the girl new and daring thoughts had come
into Seth Richmond’s mind. He began to regret his decision to get out of
town. “It would be something new and altogether delightful to remain and
walk often through the streets with Helen White,” he thought. In
imagination he saw himself putting his arm about her waist and feeling her arms
clasped tightly about his neck. One of those odd combinations of events and
places made him connect the idea of love-making with this girl and a spot he
had visited some days before. He had gone on an errand to the house of a farmer
who lived on a hillside beyond the Fair Ground and had returned by a path
through a field. At the foot of the hill below the farmer’s house Seth
had stopped beneath a sycamore tree and looked about him. A soft humming noise
had greeted his ears. For a moment he had thought the tree must be the home of
a swarm of bees.</p>
<p>And then, looking down, Seth had seen the bees everywhere all about him in the
long grass. He stood in a mass of weeds that grew waist-high in the field that
ran away from the hillside. The weeds were abloom with tiny purple blossoms and
gave forth an overpowering fragrance. Upon the weeds the bees were gathered in
armies, singing as they worked.</p>
<p>Seth imagined himself lying on a summer evening, buried deep among the weeds
beneath the tree. Beside him, in the scene built in his fancy, lay Helen White,
her hand lying in his hand. A peculiar reluctance kept him from kissing her
lips, but he felt he might have done that if he wished. Instead, he lay
perfectly still, looking at her and listening to the army of bees that sang the
sustained masterful song of labor above his head.</p>
<p>On the bench in the garden Seth stirred uneasily. Releasing the hand of the
girl, he thrust his hands into his trouser pockets. A desire to impress the
mind of his companion with the importance of the resolution he had made came
over him and he nodded his head toward the house. “Mother’ll make a
fuss, I suppose,” he whispered. “She hasn’t thought at all
about what I’m going to do in life. She thinks I’m going to stay on
here forever just being a boy.”</p>
<p>Seth’s voice became charged with boyish earnestness. “You see,
I’ve got to strike out. I’ve got to get to work. It’s what
I’m good for.”</p>
<p>Helen White was impressed. She nodded her head and a feeling of admiration
swept over her. “This is as it should be,” she thought. “This
boy is not a boy at all, but a strong, purposeful man.” Certain vague
desires that had been invading her body were swept away and she sat up very
straight on the bench. The thunder continued to rumble and flashes of heat
lightning lit up the eastern sky. The garden that had been so mysterious and
vast, a place that with Seth beside her might have become the background for
strange and wonderful adventures, now seemed no more than an ordinary Winesburg
back yard, quite definite and limited in its outlines.</p>
<p>“What will you do up there?” she whispered.</p>
<p>Seth turned half around on the bench, striving to see her face in the darkness.
He thought her infinitely more sensible and straightforward than George
Willard, and was glad he had come away from his friend. A feeling of impatience
with the town that had been in his mind returned, and he tried to tell her of
it. “Everyone talks and talks,” he began. “I’m sick of
it. I’ll do something, get into some kind of work where talk don’t
count. Maybe I’ll just be a mechanic in a shop. I don’t know. I
guess I don’t care much. I just want to work and keep quiet. That’s
all I’ve got in my mind.”</p>
<p>Seth arose from the bench and put out his hand. He did not want to bring the
meeting to an end but could not think of anything more to say.
“It’s the last time we’ll see each other,” he
whispered.</p>
<p>A wave of sentiment swept over Helen. Putting her hand upon Seth’s
shoulder, she started to draw his face down toward her own upturned face. The
act was one of pure affection and cutting regret that some vague adventure that
had been present in the spirit of the night would now never be realized.
“I think I’d better be going along,” she said, letting her
hand fall heavily to her side. A thought came to her. “Don’t you go
with me; I want to be alone,” she said. “You go and talk with your
mother. You’d better do that now.”</p>
<p>Seth hesitated and, as he stood waiting, the girl turned and ran away through
the hedge. A desire to run after her came to him, but he only stood staring,
perplexed and puzzled by her action as he had been perplexed and puzzled by all
of the life of the town out of which she had come. Walking slowly toward the
house, he stopped in the shadow of a large tree and looked at his mother
sitting by a lighted window busily sewing. The feeling of loneliness that had
visited him earlier in the evening returned and colored his thoughts of the
adventure through which he had just passed. “Huh!” he exclaimed,
turning and staring in the direction taken by Helen White. “That’s
how things’ll turn out. She’ll be like the rest. I suppose
she’ll begin now to look at me in a funny way.” He looked at the
ground and pondered this thought. “She’ll be embarrassed and feel
strange when I’m around,” he whispered to himself.
“That’s how it’ll be. That’s how everything’ll
turn out. When it comes to loving someone, it won’t never be me.
It’ll be someone else—some fool—someone who talks a
lot—someone like that George Willard.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap15"></SPAN>TANDY</h2>
<p>Until she was seven years old she lived in an old unpainted house on an unused
road that led off Trunion Pike. Her father gave her but little attention and
her mother was dead. The father spent his time talking and thinking of
religion. He proclaimed himself an agnostic and was so absorbed in destroying
the ideas of God that had crept into the minds of his neighbors that he never
saw God manifesting himself in the little child that, half forgotten, lived
here and there on the bounty of her dead mother’s relatives.</p>
<p>A stranger came to Winesburg and saw in the child what the father did not see.
He was a tall, redhaired young man who was almost always drunk. Sometimes he
sat in a chair before the New Willard House with Tom Hard, the father. As Tom
talked, declaring there could be no God, the stranger smiled and winked at the
bystanders. He and Tom became friends and were much together.</p>
<p>The stranger was the son of a rich merchant of Cleveland and had come to
Winesburg on a mission. He wanted to cure himself of the habit of drink, and
thought that by escaping from his city associates and living in a rural
community he would have a better chance in the struggle with the appetite that
was destroying him.</p>
<p>His sojourn in Winesburg was not a success. The dullness of the passing hours
led to his drinking harder than ever. But he did succeed in doing something. He
gave a name rich with meaning to Tom Hard’s daughter.</p>
<p>One evening when he was recovering from a long debauch the stranger came
reeling along the main street of the town. Tom Hard sat in a chair before the
New Willard House with his daughter, then a child of five, on his knees. Beside
him on the board sidewalk sat young George Willard. The stranger dropped into a
chair beside them. His body shook and when he tried to talk his voice trembled.</p>
<p>It was late evening and darkness lay over the town and over the railroad that
ran along the foot of a little incline before the hotel. Somewhere in the
distance, off to the west, there was a prolonged blast from the whistle of a
passenger engine. A dog that had been sleeping in the roadway arose and barked.
The stranger began to babble and made a prophecy concerning the child that lay
in the arms of the agnostic.</p>
<p>“I came here to quit drinking,” he said, and tears began to run
down his cheeks. He did not look at Tom Hard, but leaned forward and stared
into the darkness as though seeing a vision. “I ran away to the country
to be cured, but I am not cured. There is a reason.” He turned to look at
the child who sat up very straight on her father’s knee and returned the
look.</p>
<p>The stranger touched Tom Hard on the arm. “Drink is not the only thing to
which I am addicted,” he said. “There is something else. I am a
lover and have not found my thing to love. That is a big point if you know
enough to realize what I mean. It makes my destruction inevitable, you see.
There are few who understand that.”</p>
<p>The stranger became silent and seemed overcome with sadness, but another blast
from the whistle of the passenger engine aroused him. “I have not lost
faith. I proclaim that. I have only been brought to the place where I know my
faith will not be realized,” he declared hoarsely. He looked hard at the
child and began to address her, paying no more attention to the father.
“There is a woman coming,” he said, and his voice was now sharp and
earnest. “I have missed her, you see. She did not come in my time. You
may be the woman. It would be like fate to let me stand in her presence once,
on such an evening as this, when I have destroyed myself with drink and she is
as yet only a child.”</p>
<p>The shoulders of the stranger shook violently, and when he tried to roll a
cigarette the paper fell from his trembling fingers. He grew angry and scolded.
“They think it’s easy to be a woman, to be loved, but I know
better,” he declared. Again he turned to the child. “I
understand,” he cried. “Perhaps of all men I alone
understand.”</p>
<p>His glance again wandered away to the darkened street. “I know about her,
although she has never crossed my path,” he said softly. “I know
about her struggles and her defeats. It is because of her defeats that she is
to me the lovely one. Out of her defeats has been born a new quality in woman.
I have a name for it. I call it Tandy. I made up the name when I was a true
dreamer and before my body became vile. It is the quality of being strong to be
loved. It is something men need from women and that they do not get.”</p>
<p>The stranger arose and stood before Tom Hard. His body rocked back and forth
and he seemed about to fall, but instead he dropped to his knees on the
sidewalk and raised the hands of the little girl to his drunken lips. He kissed
them ecstatically. “Be Tandy, little one,” he pleaded. “Dare
to be strong and courageous. That is the road. Venture anything. Be brave
enough to dare to be loved. Be something more than man or woman. Be
Tandy.”</p>
<p>The stranger arose and staggered off down the street. A day or two later he got
aboard a train and returned to his home in Cleveland. On the summer evening,
after the talk before the hotel, Tom Hard took the girl child to the house of a
relative where she had been invited to spend the night. As he went along in the
darkness under the trees he forgot the babbling voice of the stranger and his
mind returned to the making of arguments by which he might destroy men’s
faith in God. He spoke his daughter’s name and she began to weep.</p>
<p>“I don’t want to be called that,” she declared. “I want
to be called Tandy—Tandy Hard.” The child wept so bitterly that Tom
Hard was touched and tried to comfort her. He stopped beneath a tree and,
taking her into his arms, began to caress her. “Be good, now,” he
said sharply; but she would not be quieted. With childish abandon she gave
herself over to grief, her voice breaking the evening stillness of the street.
“I want to be Tandy. I want to be Tandy. I want to be Tandy Hard,”
she cried, shaking her head and sobbing as though her young strength were not
enough to bear the vision the words of the drunkard had brought to her.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap16"></SPAN>THE STRENGTH OF GOD</h2>
<p>The Reverend Curtis Hartman was pastor of the Presbyterian Church of Winesburg,
and had been in that position ten years. He was forty years old, and by his
nature very silent and reticent. To preach, standing in the pulpit before the
people, was always a hardship for him and from Wednesday morning until Saturday
evening he thought of nothing but the two sermons that must be preached on
Sunday. Early on Sunday morning he went into a little room called a study in
the bell tower of the church and prayed. In his prayers there was one note that
always predominated. “Give me strength and courage for Thy work, O
Lord!” he pleaded, kneeling on the bare floor and bowing his head in the
presence of the task that lay before him.</p>
<p>The Reverend Hartman was a tall man with a brown beard. His wife, a stout,
nervous woman, was the daughter of a manufacturer of underwear at Cleveland,
Ohio. The minister himself was rather a favorite in the town. The elders of the
church liked him because he was quiet and unpretentious and Mrs. White, the
banker’s wife, thought him scholarly and refined.</p>
<p>The Presbyterian Church held itself somewhat aloof from the other churches of
Winesburg. It was larger and more imposing and its minister was better paid. He
even had a carriage of his own and on summer evenings sometimes drove about
town with his wife. Through Main Street and up and down Buckeye Street he went,
bowing gravely to the people, while his wife, afire with secret pride, looked
at him out of the corners of her eyes and worried lest the horse become
frightened and run away.</p>
<p>For a good many years after he came to Winesburg things went well with Curtis
Hartman. He was not one to arouse keen enthusiasm among the worshippers in his
church but on the other hand he made no enemies. In reality he was much in
earnest and sometimes suffered prolonged periods of remorse because he could
not go crying the word of God in the highways and byways of the town. He
wondered if the flame of the spirit really burned in him and dreamed of a day
when a strong sweet new current of power would come like a great wind into his
voice and his soul and the people would tremble before the spirit of God made
manifest in him. “I am a poor stick and that will never really happen to
me,” he mused dejectedly, and then a patient smile lit up his features.
“Oh well, I suppose I’m doing well enough,” he added
philosophically.</p>
<p>The room in the bell tower of the church, where on Sunday mornings the minister
prayed for an increase in him of the power of God, had but one window. It was
long and narrow and swung outward on a hinge like a door. On the window, made
of little leaded panes, was a design showing the Christ laying his hand upon
the head of a child. One Sunday morning in the summer as he sat by his desk in
the room with a large Bible opened before him, and the sheets of his sermon
scattered about, the minister was shocked to see, in the upper room of the
house next door, a woman lying in her bed and smoking a cigarette while she
read a book. Curtis Hartman went on tiptoe to the window and closed it softly.
He was horror stricken at the thought of a woman smoking and trembled also to
think that his eyes, just raised from the pages of the book of God, had looked
upon the bare shoulders and white throat of a woman. With his brain in a whirl
he went down into the pulpit and preached a long sermon without once thinking
of his gestures or his voice. The sermon attracted unusual attention because of
its power and clearness. “I wonder if she is listening, if my voice is
carrying a message into her soul,” he thought and began to hope that on
future Sunday mornings he might be able to say words that would touch and
awaken the woman apparently far gone in secret sin.</p>
<p>The house next door to the Presbyterian Church, through the windows of which
the minister had seen the sight that had so upset him, was occupied by two
women. Aunt Elizabeth Swift, a grey competent-looking widow with money in the
Winesburg National Bank, lived there with her daughter Kate Swift, a school
teacher. The school teacher was thirty years old and had a neat trim-looking
figure. She had few friends and bore a reputation of having a sharp tongue.
When he began to think about her, Curtis Hartman remembered that she had been
to Europe and had lived for two years in New York City. “Perhaps after
all her smoking means nothing,” he thought. He began to remember that
when he was a student in college and occasionally read novels, good, although
somewhat worldly women, had smoked through the pages of a book that had once
fallen into his hands. With a rush of new determination he worked on his
sermons all through the week and forgot, in his zeal to reach the ears and the
soul of this new listener, both his embarrassment in the pulpit and the
necessity of prayer in the study on Sunday mornings.</p>
<p>Reverend Hartman’s experience with women had been somewhat limited. He
was the son of a wagon maker from Muncie, Indiana, and had worked his way
through college. The daughter of the underwear manufacturer had boarded in a
house where he lived during his school days and he had married her after a
formal and prolonged courtship, carried on for the most part by the girl
herself. On his marriage day the underwear manufacturer had given his daughter
five thousand dollars and he promised to leave her at least twice that amount
in his will. The minister had thought himself fortunate in marriage and had
never permitted himself to think of other women. He did not want to think of
other women. What he wanted was to do the work of God quietly and earnestly.</p>
<p>In the soul of the minister a struggle awoke. From wanting to reach the ears of
Kate Swift, and through his sermons to delve into her soul, he began to want
also to look again at the figure lying white and quiet in the bed. On a Sunday
morning when he could not sleep because of his thoughts he arose and went to
walk in the streets. When he had gone along Main Street almost to the old
Richmond place he stopped and picking up a stone rushed off to the room in the
bell tower. With the stone he broke out a corner of the window and then locked
the door and sat down at the desk before the open Bible to wait. When the shade
of the window to Kate Swift’s room was raised he could see, through the
hole, directly into her bed, but she was not there. She also had arisen and had
gone for a walk and the hand that raised the shade was the hand of Aunt
Elizabeth Swift.</p>
<p>The minister almost wept with joy at this deliverance from the carnal desire to
“peep” and went back to his own house praising God. In an ill
moment he forgot, however, to stop the hole in the window. The piece of glass
broken out at the corner of the window just nipped off the bare heel of the boy
standing motionless and looking with rapt eyes into the face of the Christ.</p>
<p>Curtis Hartman forgot his sermon on that Sunday morning. He talked to his
congregation and in his talk said that it was a mistake for people to think of
their minister as a man set aside and intended by nature to lead a blameless
life. “Out of my own experience I know that we, who are the ministers of
God’s word, are beset by the same temptations that assail you,” he
declared. “I have been tempted and have surrendered to temptation. It is
only the hand of God, placed beneath my head, that has raised me up. As he has
raised me so also will he raise you. Do not despair. In your hour of sin raise
your eyes to the skies and you will be again and again saved.”</p>
<p>Resolutely the minister put the thoughts of the woman in the bed out of his
mind and began to be something like a lover in the presence of his wife. One
evening when they drove out together he turned the horse out of Buckeye Street
and in the darkness on Gospel Hill, above Waterworks Pond, put his arm about
Sarah Hartman’s waist. When he had eaten breakfast in the morning and was
ready to retire to his study at the back of his house he went around the table
and kissed his wife on the cheek. When thoughts of Kate Swift came into his
head, he smiled and raised his eyes to the skies. “Intercede for me,
Master,” he muttered, “keep me in the narrow path intent on Thy
work.”</p>
<p>And now began the real struggle in the soul of the brown-bearded minister. By
chance he discovered that Kate Swift was in the habit of lying in her bed in
the evenings and reading a book. A lamp stood on a table by the side of the bed
and the light streamed down upon her white shoulders and bare throat. On the
evening when he made the discovery the minister sat at the desk in the dusty
room from nine until after eleven and when her light was put out stumbled out
of the church to spend two more hours walking and praying in the streets. He
did not want to kiss the shoulders and the throat of Kate Swift and had not
allowed his mind to dwell on such thoughts. He did not know what he wanted.
“I am God’s child and he must save me from myself,” he cried,
in the darkness under the trees as he wandered in the streets. By a tree he
stood and looked at the sky that was covered with hurrying clouds. He began to
talk to God intimately and closely. “Please, Father, do not forget me.
Give me power to go tomorrow and repair the hole in the window. Lift my eyes
again to the skies. Stay with me, Thy servant, in his hour of need.”</p>
<p>Up and down through the silent streets walked the minister and for days and
weeks his soul was troubled. He could not understand the temptation that had
come to him nor could he fathom the reason for its coming. In a way he began to
blame God, saying to himself that he had tried to keep his feet in the true
path and had not run about seeking sin. “Through my days as a young man
and all through my life here I have gone quietly about my work,” he
declared. “Why now should I be tempted? What have I done that this burden
should be laid on me?”</p>
<p>Three times during the early fall and winter of that year Curtis Hartman crept
out of his house to the room in the bell tower to sit in the darkness looking
at the figure of Kate Swift lying in her bed and later went to walk and pray in
the streets. He could not understand himself. For weeks he would go along
scarcely thinking of the school teacher and telling himself that he had
conquered the carnal desire to look at her body. And then something would
happen. As he sat in the study of his own house, hard at work on a sermon, he
would become nervous and begin to walk up and down the room. “I will go
out into the streets,” he told himself and even as he let himself in at
the church door he persistently denied to himself the cause of his being there.
“I will not repair the hole in the window and I will train myself to come
here at night and sit in the presence of this woman without raising my eyes. I
will not be defeated in this thing. The Lord has devised this temptation as a
test of my soul and I will grope my way out of darkness into the light of
righteousness.”</p>
<p>One night in January when it was bitter cold and snow lay deep on the streets
of Winesburg Curtis Hartman paid his last visit to the room in the bell tower
of the church. It was past nine o’clock when he left his own house and he
set out so hurriedly that he forgot to put on his overshoes. In Main Street no
one was abroad but Hop Higgins the night watchman and in the whole town no one
was awake but the watchman and young George Willard, who sat in the office of
the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i> trying to write a story. Along the street to the
church went the minister, plowing through the drifts and thinking that this
time he would utterly give way to sin. “I want to look at the woman and
to think of kissing her shoulders and I am going to let myself think what I
choose,” he declared bitterly and tears came into his eyes. He began to
think that he would get out of the ministry and try some other way of life.
“I shall go to some city and get into business,” he declared.
“If my nature is such that I cannot resist sin, I shall give myself over
to sin. At least I shall not be a hypocrite, preaching the word of God with my
mind thinking of the shoulders and neck of a woman who does not belong to
me.”</p>
<p>It was cold in the room of the bell tower of the church on that January night
and almost as soon as he came into the room Curtis Hartman knew that if he
stayed he would be ill. His feet were wet from tramping in the snow and there
was no fire. In the room in the house next door Kate Swift had not yet
appeared. With grim determination the man sat down to wait. Sitting in the
chair and gripping the edge of the desk on which lay the Bible he stared into
the darkness thinking the blackest thoughts of his life. He thought of his wife
and for the moment almost hated her. “She has always been ashamed of
passion and has cheated me,” he thought. “Man has a right to expect
living passion and beauty in a woman. He has no right to forget that he is an
animal and in me there is something that is Greek. I will throw off the woman
of my bosom and seek other women. I will besiege this school teacher. I will
fly in the face of all men and if I am a creature of carnal lusts I will live
then for my lusts.”</p>
<p>The distracted man trembled from head to foot, partly from cold, partly from
the struggle in which he was engaged. Hours passed and a fever assailed his
body. His throat began to hurt and his teeth chattered. His feet on the study
floor felt like two cakes of ice. Still he would not give up. “I will see
this woman and will think the thoughts I have never dared to think,” he
told himself, gripping the edge of the desk and waiting.</p>
<p>Curtis Hartman came near dying from the effects of that night of waiting in the
church, and also he found in the thing that happened what he took to be the way
of life for him. On other evenings when he had waited he had not been able to
see, through the little hole in the glass, any part of the school
teacher’s room except that occupied by her bed. In the darkness he had
waited until the woman suddenly appeared sitting in the bed in her white
nightrobe. When the light was turned up she propped herself up among the
pillows and read a book. Sometimes she smoked one of the cigarettes. Only her
bare shoulders and throat were visible.</p>
<p>On the January night, after he had come near dying with cold and after his mind
had two or three times actually slipped away into an odd land of fantasy so
that he had by an exercise of will power to force himself back into
consciousness, Kate Swift appeared. In the room next door a lamp was lighted
and the waiting man stared into an empty bed. Then upon the bed before his eyes
a naked woman threw herself. Lying face downward she wept and beat with her
fists upon the pillow. With a final outburst of weeping she half arose, and in
the presence of the man who had waited to look and not to think thoughts the
woman of sin began to pray. In the lamplight her figure, slim and strong,
looked like the figure of the boy in the presence of the Christ on the leaded
window.</p>
<p>Curtis Hartman never remembered how he got out of the church. With a cry he
arose, dragging the heavy desk along the floor. The Bible fell, making a great
clatter in the silence. When the light in the house next door went out he
stumbled down the stairway and into the street. Along the street he went and
ran in at the door of the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i>. To George Willard, who was
tramping up and down in the office undergoing a struggle of his own, he began
to talk half incoherently. “The ways of God are beyond human
understanding,” he cried, running in quickly and closing the door. He
began to advance upon the young man, his eyes glowing and his voice ringing
with fervor. “I have found the light,” he cried. “After ten
years in this town, God has manifested himself to me in the body of a
woman.” His voice dropped and he began to whisper. “I did not
understand,” he said. “What I took to be a trial of my soul was
only a preparation for a new and more beautiful fervor of the spirit. God has
appeared to me in the person of Kate Swift, the school teacher, kneeling naked
on a bed. Do you know Kate Swift? Although she may not be aware of it, she is
an instrument of God, bearing the message of truth.”</p>
<p>Reverend Curtis Hartman turned and ran out of the office. At the door he
stopped, and after looking up and down the deserted street, turned again to
George Willard. “I am delivered. Have no fear.” He held up a
bleeding fist for the young man to see. “I smashed the glass of the
window,” he cried. “Now it will have to be wholly replaced. The
strength of God was in me and I broke it with my fist.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap17"></SPAN>THE TEACHER</h2>
<p>Snow lay deep in the streets of Winesburg. It had begun to snow about ten
o’clock in the morning and a wind sprang up and blew the snow in clouds
along Main Street. The frozen mud roads that led into town were fairly smooth
and in places ice covered the mud. “There will be good sleighing,”
said Will Henderson, standing by the bar in Ed Griffith’s saloon. Out of
the saloon he went and met Sylvester West the druggist stumbling along in the
kind of heavy overshoes called arctics. “Snow will bring the people into
town on Saturday,” said the druggist. The two men stopped and discussed
their affairs. Will Henderson, who had on a light overcoat and no overshoes,
kicked the heel of his left foot with the toe of the right. “Snow will be
good for the wheat,” observed the druggist sagely.</p>
<p>Young George Willard, who had nothing to do, was glad because he did not feel
like working that day. The weekly paper had been printed and taken to the post
office Wednesday evening and the snow began to fall on Thursday. At eight
o’clock, after the morning train had passed, he put a pair of skates in
his pocket and went up to Waterworks Pond but did not go skating. Past the pond
and along a path that followed Wine Creek he went until he came to a grove of
beech trees. There he built a fire against the side of a log and sat down at
the end of the log to think. When the snow began to fall and the wind to blow
he hurried about getting fuel for the fire.</p>
<p>The young reporter was thinking of Kate Swift, who had once been his school
teacher. On the evening before he had gone to her house to get a book she
wanted him to read and had been alone with her for an hour. For the fourth or
fifth time the woman had talked to him with great earnestness and he could not
make out what she meant by her talk. He began to believe she must be in love
with him and the thought was both pleasing and annoying.</p>
<p>Up from the log he sprang and began to pile sticks on the fire. Looking about
to be sure he was alone he talked aloud pretending he was in the presence of
the woman, “Oh, you’re just letting on, you know you are,” he
declared. “I am going to find out about you. You wait and see.”</p>
<p>The young man got up and went back along the path toward town leaving the fire
blazing in the wood. As he went through the streets the skates clanked in his
pocket. In his own room in the New Willard House he built a fire in the stove
and lay down on top of the bed. He began to have lustful thoughts and pulling
down the shade of the window closed his eyes and turned his face to the wall.
He took a pillow into his arms and embraced it thinking first of the school
teacher, who by her words had stirred something within him, and later of Helen
White, the slim daughter of the town banker, with whom he had been for a long
time half in love.</p>
<p>By nine o’clock of that evening snow lay deep in the streets and the
weather had become bitter cold. It was difficult to walk about. The stores were
dark and the people had crawled away to their houses. The evening train from
Cleveland was very late but nobody was interested in its arrival. By ten
o’clock all but four of the eighteen hundred citizens of the town were in
bed.</p>
<p>Hop Higgins, the night watchman, was partially awake. He was lame and carried a
heavy stick. On dark nights he carried a lantern. Between nine and ten
o’clock he went his rounds. Up and down Main Street he stumbled through
the drifts trying the doors of the stores. Then he went into alleyways and
tried the back doors. Finding all tight he hurried around the corner to the New
Willard House and beat on the door. Through the rest of the night he intended
to stay by the stove. “You go to bed. I’ll keep the stove
going,” he said to the boy who slept on a cot in the hotel office.</p>
<p>Hop Higgins sat down by the stove and took off his shoes. When the boy had gone
to sleep he began to think of his own affairs. He intended to paint his house
in the spring and sat by the stove calculating the cost of paint and labor.
That led him into other calculations. The night watchman was sixty years old
and wanted to retire. He had been a soldier in the Civil War and drew a small
pension. He hoped to find some new method of making a living and aspired to
become a professional breeder of ferrets. Already he had four of the strangely
shaped savage little creatures, that are used by sportsmen in the pursuit of
rabbits, in the cellar of his house. “Now I have one male and three
females,” he mused. “If I am lucky by spring I shall have twelve or
fifteen. In another year I shall be able to begin advertising ferrets for sale
in the sporting papers.”</p>
<p>The nightwatchman settled into his chair and his mind became a blank. He did
not sleep. By years of practice he had trained himself to sit for hours through
the long nights neither asleep nor awake. In the morning he was almost as
refreshed as though he had slept.</p>
<p>With Hop Higgins safely stowed away in the chair behind the stove only three
people were awake in Winesburg. George Willard was in the office of the
<i>Eagle</i> pretending to be at work on the writing of a story but in reality
continuing the mood of the morning by the fire in the wood. In the bell tower
of the Presbyterian Church the Reverend Curtis Hartman was sitting in the
darkness preparing himself for a revelation from God, and Kate Swift, the
school teacher, was leaving her house for a walk in the storm.</p>
<p>It was past ten o’clock when Kate Swift set out and the walk was
unpremeditated. It was as though the man and the boy, by thinking of her, had
driven her forth into the wintry streets. Aunt Elizabeth Swift had gone to the
county seat concerning some business in connection with mortgages in which she
had money invested and would not be back until the next day. By a huge stove,
called a base burner, in the living room of the house sat the daughter reading
a book. Suddenly she sprang to her feet and, snatching a cloak from a rack by
the front door, ran out of the house.</p>
<p>At the age of thirty Kate Swift was not known in Winesburg as a pretty woman.
Her complexion was not good and her face was covered with blotches that
indicated ill health. Alone in the night in the winter streets she was lovely.
Her back was straight, her shoulders square, and her features were as the
features of a tiny goddess on a pedestal in a garden in the dim light of a
summer evening.</p>
<p>During the afternoon the school teacher had been to see Doctor Welling
concerning her health. The doctor had scolded her and had declared she was in
danger of losing her hearing. It was foolish for Kate Swift to be abroad in the
storm, foolish and perhaps dangerous.</p>
<p>The woman in the streets did not remember the words of the doctor and would not
have turned back had she remembered. She was very cold but after walking for
five minutes no longer minded the cold. First she went to the end of her own
street and then across a pair of hay scales set in the ground before a feed
barn and into Trunion Pike. Along Trunion Pike she went to Ned Winters’
barn and turning east followed a street of low frame houses that led over
Gospel Hill and into Sucker Road that ran down a shallow valley past Ike
Smead’s chicken farm to Waterworks Pond. As she went along, the bold,
excited mood that had driven her out of doors passed and then returned again.</p>
<p>There was something biting and forbidding in the character of Kate Swift.
Everyone felt it. In the schoolroom she was silent, cold, and stern, and yet in
an odd way very close to her pupils. Once in a long while something seemed to
have come over her and she was happy. All of the children in the schoolroom
felt the effect of her happiness. For a time they did not work but sat back in
their chairs and looked at her.</p>
<p>With hands clasped behind her back the school teacher walked up and down in the
schoolroom and talked very rapidly. It did not seem to matter what subject came
into her mind. Once she talked to the children of Charles Lamb and made up
strange, intimate little stories concerning the life of the dead writer. The
stories were told with the air of one who had lived in a house with Charles
Lamb and knew all the secrets of his private life. The children were somewhat
confused, thinking Charles Lamb must be someone who had once lived in
Winesburg.</p>
<p>On another occasion the teacher talked to the children of Benvenuto Cellini.
That time they laughed. What a bragging, blustering, brave, lovable fellow she
made of the old artist! Concerning him also she invented anecdotes. There was
one of a German music teacher who had a room above Cellini’s lodgings in
the city of Milan that made the boys guffaw. Sugars McNutts, a fat boy with red
cheeks, laughed so hard that he became dizzy and fell off his seat and Kate
Swift laughed with him. Then suddenly she became again cold and stern.</p>
<p>On the winter night when she walked through the deserted snow-covered streets,
a crisis had come into the life of the school teacher. Although no one in
Winesburg would have suspected it, her life had been very adventurous. It was
still adventurous. Day by day as she worked in the schoolroom or walked in the
streets, grief, hope, and desire fought within her. Behind a cold exterior the
most extraordinary events transpired in her mind. The people of the town
thought of her as a confirmed old maid and because she spoke sharply and went
her own way thought her lacking in all the human feeling that did so much to
make and mar their own lives. In reality she was the most eagerly passionate
soul among them, and more than once, in the five years since she had come back
from her travels to settle in Winesburg and become a school teacher, had been
compelled to go out of the house and walk half through the night fighting out
some battle raging within. Once on a night when it rained she had stayed out
six hours and when she came home had a quarrel with Aunt Elizabeth Swift.
“I am glad you’re not a man,” said the mother sharply.
“More than once I’ve waited for your father to come home, not
knowing what new mess he had got into. I’ve had my share of uncertainty
and you cannot blame me if I do not want to see the worst side of him
reproduced in you.”</p>
<hr />
<p>Kate Swift’s mind was ablaze with thoughts of George Willard. In
something he had written as a school boy she thought she had recognized the
spark of genius and wanted to blow on the spark. One day in the summer she had
gone to the <i>Eagle</i> office and finding the boy unoccupied had taken him
out Main Street to the Fair Ground, where the two sat on a grassy bank and
talked. The school teacher tried to bring home to the mind of the boy some
conception of the difficulties he would have to face as a writer. “You
will have to know life,” she declared, and her voice trembled with
earnestness. She took hold of George Willard’s shoulders and turned him
about so that she could look into his eyes. A passer-by might have thought them
about to embrace. “If you are to become a writer you’ll have to
stop fooling with words,” she explained. “It would be better to
give up the notion of writing until you are better prepared. Now it’s
time to be living. I don’t want to frighten you, but I would like to make
you understand the import of what you think of attempting. You must not become
a mere peddler of words. The thing to learn is to know what people are thinking
about, not what they say.”</p>
<p>On the evening before that stormy Thursday night when the Reverend Curtis
Hartman sat in the bell tower of the church waiting to look at her body, young
Willard had gone to visit the teacher and to borrow a book. It was then the
thing happened that confused and puzzled the boy. He had the book under his arm
and was preparing to depart. Again Kate Swift talked with great earnestness.
Night was coming on and the light in the room grew dim. As he turned to go she
spoke his name softly and with an impulsive movement took hold of his hand.
Because the reporter was rapidly becoming a man something of his man’s
appeal, combined with the winsomeness of the boy, stirred the heart of the
lonely woman. A passionate desire to have him understand the import of life, to
learn to interpret it truly and honestly, swept over her. Leaning forward, her
lips brushed his cheek. At the same moment he for the first time became aware
of the marked beauty of her features. They were both embarrassed, and to
relieve her feeling she became harsh and domineering. “What’s the
use? It will be ten years before you begin to understand what I mean when I
talk to you,” she cried passionately.</p>
<hr />
<p>On the night of the storm and while the minister sat in the church waiting for
her, Kate Swift went to the office of the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i>, intending to
have another talk with the boy. After the long walk in the snow she was cold,
lonely, and tired. As she came through Main Street she saw the light from the
printshop window shining on the snow and on an impulse opened the door and went
in. For an hour she sat by the stove in the office talking of life. She talked
with passionate earnestness. The impulse that had driven her out into the snow
poured itself out into talk. She became inspired as she sometimes did in the
presence of the children in school. A great eagerness to open the door of life
to the boy, who had been her pupil and who she thought might possess a talent
for the understanding of life, had possession of her. So strong was her passion
that it became something physical. Again her hands took hold of his shoulders
and she turned him about. In the dim light her eyes blazed. She arose and
laughed, not sharply as was customary with her, but in a queer, hesitating way.
“I must be going,” she said. “In a moment, if I stay,
I’ll be wanting to kiss you.”</p>
<p>In the newspaper office a confusion arose. Kate Swift turned and walked to the
door. She was a teacher but she was also a woman. As she looked at George
Willard, the passionate desire to be loved by a man, that had a thousand times
before swept like a storm over her body, took possession of her. In the
lamplight George Willard looked no longer a boy, but a man ready to play the
part of a man.</p>
<p>The school teacher let George Willard take her into his arms. In the warm
little office the air became suddenly heavy and the strength went out of her
body. Leaning against a low counter by the door she waited. When he came and
put a hand on her shoulder she turned and let her body fall heavily against
him. For George Willard the confusion was immediately increased. For a moment
he held the body of the woman tightly against his body and then it stiffened.
Two sharp little fists began to beat on his face. When the school teacher had
run away and left him alone, he walked up and down the office swearing
furiously.</p>
<p>It was into this confusion that the Reverend Curtis Hartman protruded himself.
When he came in George Willard thought the town had gone mad. Shaking a
bleeding fist in the air, the minister proclaimed the woman George had only a
moment before held in his arms an instrument of God bearing a message of truth.</p>
<hr />
<p>George blew out the lamp by the window and locking the door of the printshop
went home. Through the hotel office, past Hop Higgins lost in his dream of the
raising of ferrets, he went and up into his own room. The fire in the stove had
gone out and he undressed in the cold. When he got into bed the sheets were
like blankets of dry snow.</p>
<p>George Willard rolled about in the bed on which he had lain in the afternoon
hugging the pillow and thinking thoughts of Kate Swift. The words of the
minister, who he thought had gone suddenly insane, rang in his ears. His eyes
stared about the room. The resentment, natural to the baffled male, passed and
he tried to understand what had happened. He could not make it out. Over and
over he turned the matter in his mind. Hours passed and he began to think it
must be time for another day to come. At four o’clock he pulled the
covers up about his neck and tried to sleep. When he became drowsy and closed
his eyes, he raised a hand and with it groped about in the darkness. “I
have missed something. I have missed something Kate Swift was trying to tell
me,” he muttered sleepily. Then he slept and in all Winesburg he was the
last soul on that winter night to go to sleep.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap18"></SPAN>LONELINESS</h2>
<p>He was the son of Mrs. Al Robinson who once owned a farm on a side road leading
off Trunion Pike, east of Winesburg and two miles beyond the town limits. The
farmhouse was painted brown and the blinds to all of the windows facing the
road were kept closed. In the road before the house a flock of chickens,
accompanied by two guinea hens, lay in the deep dust. Enoch lived in the house
with his mother in those days and when he was a young boy went to school at the
Winesburg High School. Old citizens remembered him as a quiet, smiling youth
inclined to silence. He walked in the middle of the road when he came into town
and sometimes read a book. Drivers of teams had to shout and swear to make him
realize where he was so that he would turn out of the beaten track and let them
pass.</p>
<p>When he was twenty-one years old Enoch went to New York City and was a city man
for fifteen years. He studied French and went to an art school, hoping to
develop a faculty he had for drawing. In his own mind he planned to go to Paris
and to finish his art education among the masters there, but that never turned
out.</p>
<p>Nothing ever turned out for Enoch Robinson. He could draw well enough and he
had many odd delicate thoughts hidden away in his brain that might have
expressed themselves through the brush of a painter, but he was always a child
and that was a handicap to his worldly development. He never grew up and of
course he couldn’t understand people and he couldn’t make people
understand him. The child in him kept bumping against things, against
actualities like money and sex and opinions. Once he was hit by a street car
and thrown against an iron post. That made him lame. It was one of the many
things that kept things from turning out for Enoch Robinson.</p>
<p>In New York City, when he first went there to live and before he became
confused and disconcerted by the facts of life, Enoch went about a good deal
with young men. He got into a group of other young artists, both men and women,
and in the evenings they sometimes came to visit him in his room. Once he got
drunk and was taken to a police station where a police magistrate frightened
him horribly, and once he tried to have an affair with a woman of the town met
on the sidewalk before his lodging house. The woman and Enoch walked together
three blocks and then the young man grew afraid and ran away. The woman had
been drinking and the incident amused her. She leaned against the wall of a
building and laughed so heartily that another man stopped and laughed with her.
The two went away together, still laughing, and Enoch crept off to his room
trembling and vexed.</p>
<p>The room in which young Robinson lived in New York faced Washington Square and
was long and narrow like a hallway. It is important to get that fixed in your
mind. The story of Enoch is in fact the story of a room almost more than it is
the story of a man.</p>
<p>And so into the room in the evening came young Enoch’s friends. There was
nothing particularly striking about them except that they were artists of the
kind that talk. Everyone knows of the talking artists. Throughout all of the
known history of the world they have gathered in rooms and talked. They talk of
art and are passionately, almost feverishly, in earnest about it. They think it
matters much more than it does.</p>
<p>And so these people gathered and smoked cigarettes and talked and Enoch
Robinson, the boy from the farm near Winesburg, was there. He stayed in a
corner and for the most part said nothing. How his big blue childlike eyes
stared about! On the walls were pictures he had made, crude things, half
finished. His friends talked of these. Leaning back in their chairs, they
talked and talked with their heads rocking from side to side. Words were said
about line and values and composition, lots of words, such as are always being
said.</p>
<p>Enoch wanted to talk too but he didn’t know how. He was too excited to
talk coherently. When he tried he sputtered and stammered and his voice sounded
strange and squeaky to him. That made him stop talking. He knew what he wanted
to say, but he knew also that he could never by any possibility say it. When a
picture he had painted was under discussion, he wanted to burst out with
something like this: “You don’t get the point,” he wanted to
explain; “the picture you see doesn’t consist of the things you see
and say words about. There is something else, something you don’t see at
all, something you aren’t intended to see. Look at this one over here, by
the door here, where the light from the window falls on it. The dark spot by
the road that you might not notice at all is, you see, the beginning of
everything. There is a clump of elders there such as used to grow beside the
road before our house back in Winesburg, Ohio, and in among the elders there is
something hidden. It is a woman, that’s what it is. She has been thrown
from a horse and the horse has run away out of sight. Do you not see how the
old man who drives a cart looks anxiously about? That is Thad Grayback who has
a farm up the road. He is taking corn to Winesburg to be ground into meal at
Comstock’s mill. He knows there is something in the elders, something
hidden away, and yet he doesn’t quite know.</p>
<p>“It’s a woman you see, that’s what it is! It’s a woman
and, oh, she is lovely! She is hurt and is suffering but she makes no sound.
Don’t you see how it is? She lies quite still, white and still, and the
beauty comes out from her and spreads over everything. It is in the sky back
there and all around everywhere. I didn’t try to paint the woman, of
course. She is too beautiful to be painted. How dull to talk of composition and
such things! Why do you not look at the sky and then run away as I used to do
when I was a boy back there in Winesburg, Ohio?”</p>
<p>That is the kind of thing young Enoch Robinson trembled to say to the guests
who came into his room when he was a young fellow in New York City, but he
always ended by saying nothing. Then he began to doubt his own mind. He was
afraid the things he felt were not getting expressed in the pictures he
painted. In a half indignant mood he stopped inviting people into his room and
presently got into the habit of locking the door. He began to think that enough
people had visited him, that he did not need people any more. With quick
imagination he began to invent his own people to whom he could really talk and
to whom he explained the things he had been unable to explain to living people.
His room began to be inhabited by the spirits of men and women among whom he
went, in his turn saying words. It was as though everyone Enoch Robinson had
ever seen had left with him some essence of himself, something he could mould
and change to suit his own fancy, something that understood all about such
things as the wounded woman behind the elders in the pictures.</p>
<p>The mild, blue-eyed young Ohio boy was a complete egotist, as all children are
egotists. He did not want friends for the quite simple reason that no child
wants friends. He wanted most of all the people of his own mind, people with
whom he could really talk, people he could harangue and scold by the hour,
servants, you see, to his fancy. Among these people he was always
self-confident and bold. They might talk, to be sure, and even have opinions of
their own, but always he talked last and best. He was like a writer busy among
the figures of his brain, a kind of tiny blue-eyed king he was, in a six-dollar
room facing Washington Square in the city of New York.</p>
<p>Then Enoch Robinson got married. He began to get lonely and to want to touch
actual flesh-and-bone people with his hands. Days passed when his room seemed
empty. Lust visited his body and desire grew in his mind. At night strange
fevers, burning within, kept him awake. He married a girl who sat in a chair
next to his own in the art school and went to live in an apartment house in
Brooklyn. Two children were born to the woman he married, and Enoch got a job
in a place where illustrations are made for advertisements.</p>
<p>That began another phase of Enoch’s life. He began to play at a new game.
For a while he was very proud of himself in the role of producing citizen of
the world. He dismissed the essence of things and played with realities. In the
fall he voted at an election and he had a newspaper thrown on his porch each
morning. When in the evening he came home from work he got off a streetcar and
walked sedately along behind some business man, striving to look very
substantial and important. As a payer of taxes he thought he should post
himself on how things are run. “I’m getting to be of some moment, a
real part of things, of the state and the city and all that,” he told
himself with an amusing miniature air of dignity. Once, coming home from
Philadelphia, he had a discussion with a man met on a train. Enoch talked about
the advisability of the government’s owning and operating the railroads
and the man gave him a cigar. It was Enoch’s notion that such a move on
the part of the government would be a good thing, and he grew quite excited as
he talked. Later he remembered his own words with pleasure. “I gave him
something to think about, that fellow,” he muttered to himself as he
climbed the stairs to his Brooklyn apartment.</p>
<p>To be sure, Enoch’s marriage did not turn out. He himself brought it to
an end. He began to feel choked and walled in by the life in the apartment, and
to feel toward his wife and even toward his children as he had felt concerning
the friends who once came to visit him. He began to tell little lies about
business engagements that would give him freedom to walk alone in the street at
night and, the chance offering, he secretly re-rented the room facing
Washington Square. Then Mrs. Al Robinson died on the farm near Winesburg, and
he got eight thousand dollars from the bank that acted as trustee of her
estate. That took Enoch out of the world of men altogether. He gave the money
to his wife and told her he could not live in the apartment any more. She cried
and was angry and threatened, but he only stared at her and went his own way.
In reality the wife did not care much. She thought Enoch slightly insane and
was a little afraid of him. When it was quite sure that he would never come
back, she took the two children and went to a village in Connecticut where she
had lived as a girl. In the end she married a man who bought and sold real
estate and was contented enough.</p>
<p>And so Enoch Robinson stayed in the New York room among the people of his
fancy, playing with them, talking to them, happy as a child is happy. They were
an odd lot, Enoch’s people. They were made, I suppose, out of real people
he had seen and who had for some obscure reason made an appeal to him. There
was a woman with a sword in her hand, an old man with a long white beard who
went about followed by a dog, a young girl whose stockings were always coming
down and hanging over her shoe tops. There must have been two dozen of the
shadow people, invented by the child-mind of Enoch Robinson, who lived in the
room with him.</p>
<p>And Enoch was happy. Into the room he went and locked the door. With an absurd
air of importance he talked aloud, giving instructions, making comments on
life. He was happy and satisfied to go on making his living in the advertising
place until something happened. Of course something did happen. That is why he
went back to live in Winesburg and why we know about him. The thing that
happened was a woman. It would be that way. He was too happy. Something had to
come into his world. Something had to drive him out of the New York room to
live out his life an obscure, jerky little figure, bobbing up and down on the
streets of an Ohio town at evening when the sun was going down behind the roof
of Wesley Moyer’s livery barn.</p>
<p>About the thing that happened. Enoch told George Willard about it one night. He
wanted to talk to someone, and he chose the young newspaper reporter because
the two happened to be thrown together at a time when the younger man was in a
mood to understand.</p>
<p>Youthful sadness, young man’s sadness, the sadness of a growing boy in a
village at the year’s end, opened the lips of the old man. The sadness
was in the heart of George Willard and was without meaning, but it appealed to
Enoch Robinson.</p>
<p>It rained on the evening when the two met and talked, a drizzly wet October
rain. The fruition of the year had come and the night should have been fine
with a moon in the sky and the crisp sharp promise of frost in the air, but it
wasn’t that way. It rained and little puddles of water shone under the
street lamps on Main Street. In the woods in the darkness beyond the Fair
Ground water dripped from the black trees. Beneath the trees wet leaves were
pasted against tree roots that protruded from the ground. In gardens back of
houses in Winesburg dry shriveled potato vines lay sprawling on the ground. Men
who had finished the evening meal and who had planned to go uptown to talk the
evening away with other men at the back of some store changed their minds.
George Willard tramped about in the rain and was glad that it rained. He felt
that way. He was like Enoch Robinson on the evenings when the old man came down
out of his room and wandered alone in the streets. He was like that only that
George Willard had become a tall young man and did not think it manly to weep
and carry on. For a month his mother had been very ill and that had something
to do with his sadness, but not much. He thought about himself and to the young
that always brings sadness.</p>
<p>Enoch Robinson and George Willard met beneath a wooden awning that extended out
over the sidewalk before Voight’s wagon shop on Maumee Street just off
the main street of Winesburg. They went together from there through the
rain-washed streets to the older man’s room on the third floor of the
Heffner Block. The young reporter went willingly enough. Enoch Robinson asked
him to go after the two had talked for ten minutes. The boy was a little afraid
but had never been more curious in his life. A hundred times he had heard the
old man spoken of as a little off his head and he thought himself rather brave
and manly to go at all. From the very beginning, in the street in the rain, the
old man talked in a queer way, trying to tell the story of the room in
Washington Square and of his life in the room. “You’ll understand
if you try hard enough,” he said conclusively. “I have looked at
you when you went past me on the street and I think you can understand. It
isn’t hard. All you have to do is to believe what I say, just listen and
believe, that’s all there is to it.”</p>
<p>It was past eleven o’clock that evening when old Enoch, talking to George
Willard in the room in the Heffner Block, came to the vital thing, the story of
the woman and of what drove him out of the city to live out his life alone and
defeated in Winesburg. He sat on a cot by the window with his head in his hand
and George Willard was in a chair by a table. A kerosene lamp sat on the table
and the room, although almost bare of furniture, was scrupulously clean. As the
man talked George Willard began to feel that he would like to get out of the
chair and sit on the cot also. He wanted to put his arms about the little old
man. In the half darkness the man talked and the boy listened, filled with
sadness.</p>
<p>“She got to coming in there after there hadn’t been anyone in the
room for years,” said Enoch Robinson. “She saw me in the hallway of
the house and we got acquainted. I don’t know just what she did in her
own room. I never went there. I think she was a musician and played a violin.
Every now and then she came and knocked at the door and I opened it. In she
came and sat down beside me, just sat and looked about and said nothing.
Anyway, she said nothing that mattered.”</p>
<p>The old man arose from the cot and moved about the room. The overcoat he wore
was wet from the rain and drops of water kept falling with a soft thump on the
floor. When he again sat upon the cot George Willard got out of the chair and
sat beside him.</p>
<p>“I had a feeling about her. She sat there in the room with me and she was
too big for the room. I felt that she was driving everything else away. We just
talked of little things, but I couldn’t sit still. I wanted to touch her
with my fingers and to kiss her. Her hands were so strong and her face was so
good and she looked at me all the time.”</p>
<p>The trembling voice of the old man became silent and his body shook as from a
chill. “I was afraid,” he whispered. “I was terribly afraid.
I didn’t want to let her come in when she knocked at the door but I
couldn’t sit still. ‘No, no,’ I said to myself, but I got up
and opened the door just the same. She was so grown up, you see. She was a
woman. I thought she would be bigger than I was there in that room.”</p>
<p>Enoch Robinson stared at George Willard, his childlike blue eyes shining in the
lamplight. Again he shivered. “I wanted her and all the time I
didn’t want her,” he explained. “Then I began to tell her
about my people, about everything that meant anything to me. I tried to keep
quiet, to keep myself to myself, but I couldn’t. I felt just as I did
about opening the door. Sometimes I ached to have her go away and never come
back any more.”</p>
<p>The old man sprang to his feet and his voice shook with excitement. “One
night something happened. I became mad to make her understand me and to know
what a big thing I was in that room. I wanted her to see how important I was. I
told her over and over. When she tried to go away, I ran and locked the door. I
followed her about. I talked and talked and then all of a sudden things went to
smash. A look came into her eyes and I knew she did understand. Maybe she had
understood all the time. I was furious. I couldn’t stand it. I wanted her
to understand but, don’t you see, I couldn’t let her understand. I
felt that then she would know everything, that I would be submerged, drowned
out, you see. That’s how it is. I don’t know why.”</p>
<p>The old man dropped into a chair by the lamp and the boy listened, filled with
awe. “Go away, boy,” said the man. “Don’t stay here
with me any more. I thought it might be a good thing to tell you but it
isn’t. I don’t want to talk any more. Go away.”</p>
<p>George Willard shook his head and a note of command came into his voice.
“Don’t stop now. Tell me the rest of it,” he commanded
sharply. “What happened? Tell me the rest of the story.”</p>
<p>Enoch Robinson sprang to his feet and ran to the window that looked down into
the deserted main street of Winesburg. George Willard followed. By the window
the two stood, the tall awkward boy-man and the little wrinkled man-boy. The
childish, eager voice carried forward the tale. “I swore at her,”
he explained. “I said vile words. I ordered her to go away and not to
come back. Oh, I said terrible things. At first she pretended not to understand
but I kept at it. I screamed and stamped on the floor. I made the house ring
with my curses. I didn’t want ever to see her again and I knew, after
some of the things I said, that I never would see her again.”</p>
<p>The old man’s voice broke and he shook his head. “Things went to
smash,” he said quietly and sadly. “Out she went through the door
and all the life there had been in the room followed her out. She took all of
my people away. They all went out through the door after her. That’s the
way it was.”</p>
<p>George Willard turned and went out of Enoch Robinson’s room. In the
darkness by the window, as he went through the door, he could hear the thin old
voice whimpering and complaining. “I’m alone, all alone
here,” said the voice. “It was warm and friendly in my room but now
I’m all alone.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap19"></SPAN>AN AWAKENING</h2>
<p>Belle Carpenter had a dark skin, grey eyes, and thick lips. She was tall and
strong. When black thoughts visited her she grew angry and wished she were a
man and could fight someone with her fists. She worked in the millinery shop
kept by Mrs. Kate McHugh and during the day sat trimming hats by a window at
the rear of the store. She was the daughter of Henry Carpenter, bookkeeper in
the First National Bank of Winesburg, and lived with him in a gloomy old house
far out at the end of Buckeye Street. The house was surrounded by pine trees
and there was no grass beneath the trees. A rusty tin eaves-trough had slipped
from its fastenings at the back of the house and when the wind blew it beat
against the roof of a small shed, making a dismal drumming noise that sometimes
persisted all through the night.</p>
<p>When she was a young girl Henry Carpenter made life almost unbearable for
Belle, but as she emerged from girlhood into womanhood he lost his power over
her. The bookkeeper’s life was made up of innumerable little pettinesses.
When he went to the bank in the morning he stepped into a closet and put on a
black alpaca coat that had become shabby with age. At night when he returned to
his home he donned another black alpaca coat. Every evening he pressed the
clothes worn in the streets. He had invented an arrangement of boards for the
purpose. The trousers to his street suit were placed between the boards and the
boards were clamped together with heavy screws. In the morning he wiped the
boards with a damp cloth and stood them upright behind the dining room door. If
they were moved during the day he was speechless with anger and did not recover
his equilibrium for a week.</p>
<p>The bank cashier was a little bully and was afraid of his daughter. She, he
realized, knew the story of his brutal treatment of her mother and hated him
for it. One day she went home at noon and carried a handful of soft mud, taken
from the road, into the house. With the mud she smeared the face of the boards
used for the pressing of trousers and then went back to her work feeling
relieved and happy.</p>
<p>Belle Carpenter occasionally walked out in the evening with George Willard.
Secretly she loved another man, but her love affair, about which no one knew,
caused her much anxiety. She was in love with Ed Handby, bartender in Ed
Griffith’s Saloon, and went about with the young reporter as a kind of
relief to her feelings. She did not think that her station in life would permit
her to be seen in the company of the bartender and walked about under the trees
with George Willard and let him kiss her to relieve a longing that was very
insistent in her nature. She felt that she could keep the younger man within
bounds. About Ed Handby she was somewhat uncertain.</p>
<p>Handby, the bartender, was a tall, broad-shouldered man of thirty who lived in
a room upstairs above Griffith’s saloon. His fists were large and his
eyes unusually small, but his voice, as though striving to conceal the power
back of his fists, was soft and quiet.</p>
<p>At twenty-five the bartender had inherited a large farm from an uncle in
Indiana. When sold, the farm brought in eight thousand dollars, which Ed spent
in six months. Going to Sandusky, on Lake Erie, he began an orgy of
dissipation, the story of which afterward filled his home town with awe. Here
and there he went throwing the money about, driving carriages through the
streets, giving wine parties to crowds of men and women, playing cards for high
stakes and keeping mistresses whose wardrobes cost him hundreds of dollars. One
night at a resort called Cedar Point, he got into a fight and ran amuck like a
wild thing. With his fist he broke a large mirror in the wash room of a hotel
and later went about smashing windows and breaking chairs in dance halls for
the joy of hearing the glass rattle on the floor and seeing the terror in the
eyes of clerks who had come from Sandusky to spend the evening at the resort
with their sweethearts.</p>
<p>The affair between Ed Handby and Belle Carpenter on the surface amounted to
nothing. He had succeeded in spending but one evening in her company. On that
evening he hired a horse and buggy at Wesley Moyer’s livery barn and took
her for a drive. The conviction that she was the woman his nature demanded and
that he must get her settled upon him and he told her of his desires. The
bartender was ready to marry and to begin trying to earn money for the support
of his wife, but so simple was his nature that he found it difficult to explain
his intentions. His body ached with physical longing and with his body he
expressed himself. Taking the milliner into his arms and holding her tightly in
spite of her struggles, he kissed her until she became helpless. Then he
brought her back to town and let her out of the buggy. “When I get hold
of you again I’ll not let you go. You can’t play with me,” he
declared as he turned to drive away. Then, jumping out of the buggy, he gripped
her shoulders with his strong hands. “I’ll keep you for good the
next time,” he said. “You might as well make up your mind to that.
It’s you and me for it and I’m going to have you before I get
through.”</p>
<p>One night in January when there was a new moon George Willard, who was in Ed
Handby’s mind the only obstacle to his getting Belle Carpenter, went for
a walk. Early that evening George went into Ransom Surbeck’s pool room
with Seth Richmond and Art Wilson, son of the town butcher. Seth Richmond stood
with his back against the wall and remained silent, but George Willard talked.
The pool room was filled with Winesburg boys and they talked of women. The
young reporter got into that vein. He said that women should look out for
themselves, that the fellow who went out with a girl was not responsible for
what happened. As he talked he looked about, eager for attention. He held the
floor for five minutes and then Art Wilson began to talk. Art was learning the
barber’s trade in Cal Prouse’s shop and already began to consider
himself an authority in such matters as baseball, horse racing, drinking, and
going about with women. He began to tell of a night when he with two men from
Winesburg went into a house of prostitution at the county seat. The
butcher’s son held a cigar in the side of his mouth and as he talked spat
on the floor. “The women in the place couldn’t embarrass me
although they tried hard enough,” he boasted. “One of the girls in
the house tried to get fresh, but I fooled her. As soon as she began to talk I
went and sat in her lap. Everyone in the room laughed when I kissed her. I
taught her to let me alone.”</p>
<p>George Willard went out of the pool room and into Main Street. For days the
weather had been bitter cold with a high wind blowing down on the town from
Lake Erie, eighteen miles to the north, but on that night the wind had died
away and a new moon made the night unusually lovely. Without thinking where he
was going or what he wanted to do, George went out of Main Street and began
walking in dimly lighted streets filled with frame houses.</p>
<p>Out of doors under the black sky filled with stars he forgot his companions of
the pool room. Because it was dark and he was alone he began to talk aloud. In
a spirit of play he reeled along the street imitating a drunken man and then
imagined himself a soldier clad in shining boots that reached to the knees and
wearing a sword that jingled as he walked. As a soldier he pictured himself as
an inspector, passing before a long line of men who stood at attention. He
began to examine the accoutrements of the men. Before a tree he stopped and
began to scold. “Your pack is not in order,” he said sharply.
“How many times will I have to speak of this matter? Everything must be
in order here. We have a difficult task before us and no difficult task can be
done without order.”</p>
<p>Hypnotized by his own words, the young man stumbled along the board sidewalk
saying more words. “There is a law for armies and for men too,” he
muttered, lost in reflection. “The law begins with little things and
spreads out until it covers everything. In every little thing there must be
order, in the place where men work, in their clothes, in their thoughts. I
myself must be orderly. I must learn that law. I must get myself into touch
with something orderly and big that swings through the night like a star. In my
little way I must begin to learn something, to give and swing and work with
life, with the law.”</p>
<p>George Willard stopped by a picket fence near a street lamp and his body began
to tremble. He had never before thought such thoughts as had just come into his
head and he wondered where they had come from. For the moment it seemed to him
that some voice outside of himself had been talking as he walked. He was amazed
and delighted with his own mind and when he walked on again spoke of the matter
with fervor. “To come out of Ransom Surbeck’s pool room and think
things like that,” he whispered. “It is better to be alone. If I
talked like Art Wilson the boys would understand me but they wouldn’t
understand what I’ve been thinking down here.”</p>
<p>In Winesburg, as in all Ohio towns of twenty years ago, there was a section in
which lived day laborers. As the time of factories had not yet come, the
laborers worked in the fields or were section hands on the railroads. They
worked twelve hours a day and received one dollar for the long day of toil. The
houses in which they lived were small cheaply constructed wooden affairs with a
garden at the back. The more comfortable among them kept cows and perhaps a
pig, housed in a little shed at the rear of the garden.</p>
<p>With his head filled with resounding thoughts, George Willard walked into such
a street on the clear January night. The street was dimly lighted and in places
there was no sidewalk. In the scene that lay about him there was something that
excited his already aroused fancy. For a year he had been devoting all of his
odd moments to the reading of books and now some tale he had read concerning
life in old world towns of the middle ages came sharply back to his mind so
that he stumbled forward with the curious feeling of one revisiting a place
that had been a part of some former existence. On an impulse he turned out of
the street and went into a little dark alleyway behind the sheds in which lived
the cows and pigs.</p>
<p>For a half hour he stayed in the alleyway, smelling the strong smell of animals
too closely housed and letting his mind play with the strange new thoughts that
came to him. The very rankness of the smell of manure in the clear sweet air
awoke something heady in his brain. The poor little houses lighted by kerosene
lamps, the smoke from the chimneys mounting straight up into the clear air, the
grunting of pigs, the women clad in cheap calico dresses and washing dishes in
the kitchens, the footsteps of men coming out of the houses and going off to
the stores and saloons of Main Street, the dogs barking and the children
crying—all of these things made him seem, as he lurked in the darkness,
oddly detached and apart from all life.</p>
<p>The excited young man, unable to bear the weight of his own thoughts, began to
move cautiously along the alleyway. A dog attacked him and had to be driven
away with stones, and a man appeared at the door of one of the houses and swore
at the dog. George went into a vacant lot and throwing back his head looked up
at the sky. He felt unutterably big and remade by the simple experience through
which he had been passing and in a kind of fervor of emotion put up his hands,
thrusting them into the darkness above his head and muttering words. The desire
to say words overcame him and he said words without meaning, rolling them over
on his tongue and saying them because they were brave words, full of meaning.
“Death,” he muttered, “night, the sea, fear,
loveliness.”</p>
<p>George Willard came out of the vacant lot and stood again on the sidewalk
facing the houses. He felt that all of the people in the little street must be
brothers and sisters to him and he wished he had the courage to call them out
of their houses and to shake their hands. “If there were only a woman
here I would take hold of her hand and we would run until we were both tired
out,” he thought. “That would make me feel better.” With the
thought of a woman in his mind he walked out of the street and went toward the
house where Belle Carpenter lived. He thought she would understand his mood and
that he could achieve in her presence a position he had long been wanting to
achieve. In the past when he had been with her and had kissed her lips he had
come away filled with anger at himself. He had felt like one being used for
some obscure purpose and had not enjoyed the feeling. Now he thought he had
suddenly become too big to be used.</p>
<p>When George got to Belle Carpenter’s house there had already been a
visitor there before him. Ed Handby had come to the door and calling Belle out
of the house had tried to talk to her. He had wanted to ask the woman to come
away with him and to be his wife, but when she came and stood by the door he
lost his self-assurance and became sullen. “You stay away from that
kid,” he growled, thinking of George Willard, and then, not knowing what
else to say, turned to go away. “If I catch you together I will break
your bones and his too,” he added. The bartender had come to woo, not to
threaten, and was angry with himself because of his failure.</p>
<p>When her lover had departed Belle went indoors and ran hurriedly upstairs. From
a window at the upper part of the house she saw Ed Handby cross the street and
sit down on a horse block before the house of a neighbor. In the dim light the
man sat motionless holding his head in his hands. She was made happy by the
sight, and when George Willard came to the door she greeted him effusively and
hurriedly put on her hat. She thought that, as she walked through the streets
with young Willard, Ed Handby would follow and she wanted to make him suffer.</p>
<p>For an hour Belle Carpenter and the young reporter walked about under the trees
in the sweet night air. George Willard was full of big words. The sense of
power that had come to him during the hour in the darkness in the alleyway
remained with him and he talked boldly, swaggering along and swinging his arms
about. He wanted to make Belle Carpenter realize that he was aware of his
former weakness and that he had changed. “You’ll find me
different,” he declared, thrusting his hands into his pockets and looking
boldly into her eyes. “I don’t know why but it is so. You’ve
got to take me for a man or let me alone. That’s how it is.”</p>
<p>Up and down the quiet streets under the new moon went the woman and the boy.
When George had finished talking they turned down a side street and went across
a bridge into a path that ran up the side of a hill. The hill began at
Waterworks Pond and climbed upward to the Winesburg Fair Grounds. On the
hillside grew dense bushes and small trees and among the bushes were little
open spaces carpeted with long grass, now stiff and frozen.</p>
<p>As he walked behind the woman up the hill George Willard’s heart began to
beat rapidly and his shoulders straightened. Suddenly he decided that Belle
Carpenter was about to surrender herself to him. The new force that had
manifested itself in him had, he felt, been at work upon her and had led to her
conquest. The thought made him half drunk with the sense of masculine power.
Although he had been annoyed that as they walked about she had not seemed to be
listening to his words, the fact that she had accompanied him to this place
took all his doubts away. “It is different. Everything has become
different,” he thought and taking hold of her shoulder turned her about
and stood looking at her, his eyes shining with pride.</p>
<p>Belle Carpenter did not resist. When he kissed her upon the lips she leaned
heavily against him and looked over his shoulder into the darkness. In her
whole attitude there was a suggestion of waiting. Again, as in the alleyway,
George Willard’s mind ran off into words and, holding the woman tightly
he whispered the words into the still night. “Lust,” he whispered,
“lust and night and women.”</p>
<p>George Willard did not understand what happened to him that night on the
hillside. Later, when he got to his own room, he wanted to weep and then grew
half insane with anger and hate. He hated Belle Carpenter and was sure that all
his life he would continue to hate her. On the hillside he had led the woman to
one of the little open spaces among the bushes and had dropped to his knees
beside her. As in the vacant lot, by the laborers’ houses, he had put up
his hands in gratitude for the new power in himself and was waiting for the
woman to speak when Ed Handby appeared.</p>
<p>The bartender did not want to beat the boy, who he thought had tried to take
his woman away. He knew that beating was unnecessary, that he had power within
himself to accomplish his purpose without using his fists. Gripping George by
the shoulder and pulling him to his feet, he held him with one hand while he
looked at Belle Carpenter seated on the grass. Then with a quick wide movement
of his arm he sent the younger man sprawling away into the bushes and began to
bully the woman, who had risen to her feet. “You’re no good,”
he said roughly. “I’ve half a mind not to bother with you.
I’d let you alone if I didn’t want you so much.”</p>
<p>On his hands and knees in the bushes George Willard stared at the scene before
him and tried hard to think. He prepared to spring at the man who had
humiliated him. To be beaten seemed to be infinitely better than to be thus
hurled ignominiously aside.</p>
<p>Three times the young reporter sprang at Ed Handby and each time the bartender,
catching him by the shoulder, hurled him back into the bushes. The older man
seemed prepared to keep the exercise going indefinitely but George
Willard’s head struck the root of a tree and he lay still. Then Ed Handby
took Belle Carpenter by the arm and marched her away.</p>
<p>George heard the man and woman making their way through the bushes. As he crept
down the hillside his heart was sick within him. He hated himself and he hated
the fate that had brought about his humiliation. When his mind went back to the
hour alone in the alleyway he was puzzled and stopping in the darkness
listened, hoping to hear again the voice outside himself that had so short a
time before put new courage into his heart. When his way homeward led him again
into the street of frame houses he could not bear the sight and began to run,
wanting to get quickly out of the neighborhood that now seemed to him utterly
squalid and commonplace.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap20"></SPAN>“QUEER”</h2>
<p>From his seat on a box in the rough board shed that stuck like a burr on the
rear of Cowley & Son’s store in Winesburg, Elmer Cowley, the junior
member of the firm, could see through a dirty window into the printshop of the
<i>Winesburg Eagle</i>. Elmer was putting new shoelaces in his shoes. They did
not go in readily and he had to take the shoes off. With the shoes in his hand
he sat looking at a large hole in the heel of one of his stockings. Then
looking quickly up he saw George Willard, the only newspaper reporter in
Winesburg, standing at the back door of the <i>Eagle</i> printshop and staring
absentmindedly about. “Well, well, what next!” exclaimed the young
man with the shoes in his hand, jumping to his feet and creeping away from the
window.</p>
<p>A flush crept into Elmer Cowley’s face and his hands began to tremble. In
Cowley & Son’s store a Jewish traveling salesman stood by the counter
talking to his father. He imagined the reporter could hear what was being said
and the thought made him furious. With one of the shoes still held in his hand
he stood in a corner of the shed and stamped with a stockinged foot upon the
board floor.</p>
<p>Cowley & Son’s store did not face the main street of Winesburg. The
front was on Maumee Street and beyond it was Voight’s wagon shop and a
shed for the sheltering of farmers’ horses. Beside the store an alleyway
ran behind the main street stores and all day drays and delivery wagons, intent
on bringing in and taking out goods, passed up and down. The store itself was
indescribable. Will Henderson once said of it that it sold everything and
nothing. In the window facing Maumee Street stood a chunk of coal as large as
an apple barrel, to indicate that orders for coal were taken, and beside the
black mass of the coal stood three combs of honey grown brown and dirty in
their wooden frames.</p>
<p>The honey had stood in the store window for six months. It was for sale as were
also the coat hangers, patent suspender buttons, cans of roof paint, bottles of
rheumatism cure, and a substitute for coffee that companioned the honey in its
patient willingness to serve the public.</p>
<p>Ebenezer Cowley, the man who stood in the store listening to the eager patter
of words that fell from the lips of the traveling man, was tall and lean and
looked unwashed. On his scrawny neck was a large wen partially covered by a
grey beard. He wore a long Prince Albert coat. The coat had been purchased to
serve as a wedding garment. Before he became a merchant Ebenezer was a farmer
and after his marriage he wore the Prince Albert coat to church on Sundays and
on Saturday afternoons when he came into town to trade. When he sold the farm
to become a merchant he wore the coat constantly. It had become brown with age
and was covered with grease spots, but in it Ebenezer always felt dressed up
and ready for the day in town.</p>
<p>As a merchant Ebenezer was not happily placed in life and he had not been
happily placed as a farmer. Still he existed. His family, consisting of a
daughter named Mabel and the son, lived with him in rooms above the store and
it did not cost them much to live. His troubles were not financial. His
unhappiness as a merchant lay in the fact that when a traveling man with wares
to be sold came in at the front door he was afraid. Behind the counter he stood
shaking his head. He was afraid, first that he would stubbornly refuse to buy
and thus lose the opportunity to sell again; second that he would not be
stubborn enough and would in a moment of weakness buy what could not be sold.</p>
<p>In the store on the morning when Elmer Cowley saw George Willard standing and
apparently listening at the back door of the <i>Eagle</i> printshop, a
situation had arisen that always stirred the son’s wrath. The traveling
man talked and Ebenezer listened, his whole figure expressing uncertainty.
“You see how quickly it is done,” said the traveling man, who had
for sale a small flat metal substitute for collar buttons. With one hand he
quickly unfastened a collar from his shirt and then fastened it on again. He
assumed a flattering wheedling tone. “I tell you what, men have come to
the end of all this fooling with collar buttons and you are the man to make
money out of the change that is coming. I am offering you the exclusive agency
for this town. Take twenty dozen of these fasteners and I’ll not visit
any other store. I’ll leave the field to you.”</p>
<p>The traveling man leaned over the counter and tapped with his finger on
Ebenezer’s breast. “It’s an opportunity and I want you to
take it,” he urged. “A friend of mine told me about you. ‘See
that man Cowley,’ he said. ‘He’s a live one.’”</p>
<p>The traveling man paused and waited. Taking a book from his pocket he began
writing out the order. Still holding the shoe in his hand Elmer Cowley went
through the store, past the two absorbed men, to a glass showcase near the
front door. He took a cheap revolver from the case and began to wave it about.
“You get out of here!” he shrieked. “We don’t want any
collar fasteners here.” An idea came to him. “Mind, I’m not
making any threat,” he added. “I don’t say I’ll shoot.
Maybe I just took this gun out of the case to look at it. But you better get
out. Yes sir, I’ll say that. You better grab up your things and get
out.”</p>
<p>The young storekeeper’s voice rose to a scream and going behind the
counter he began to advance upon the two men. “We’re through being
fools here!” he cried. “We ain’t going to buy any more stuff
until we begin to sell. We ain’t going to keep on being queer and have
folks staring and listening. You get out of here!”</p>
<p>The traveling man left. Raking the samples of collar fasteners off the counter
into a black leather bag, he ran. He was a small man and very bow-legged and he
ran awkwardly. The black bag caught against the door and he stumbled and fell.
“Crazy, that’s what he is—crazy!” he sputtered as he
arose from the sidewalk and hurried away.</p>
<p>In the store Elmer Cowley and his father stared at each other. Now that the
immediate object of his wrath had fled, the younger man was embarrassed.
“Well, I meant it. I think we’ve been queer long enough,” he
declared, going to the showcase and replacing the revolver. Sitting on a barrel
he pulled on and fastened the shoe he had been holding in his hand. He was
waiting for some word of understanding from his father but when Ebenezer spoke
his words only served to reawaken the wrath in the son and the young man ran
out of the store without replying. Scratching his grey beard with his long
dirty fingers, the merchant looked at his son with the same wavering uncertain
stare with which he had confronted the traveling man. “I’ll be
starched,” he said softly. “Well, well, I’ll be washed and
ironed and starched!”</p>
<p>Elmer Cowley went out of Winesburg and along a country road that paralleled the
railroad track. He did not know where he was going or what he was going to do.
In the shelter of a deep cut where the road, after turning sharply to the
right, dipped under the tracks he stopped and the passion that had been the
cause of his outburst in the store began to again find expression. “I
will not be queer—one to be looked at and listened to,” he declared
aloud. “I’ll be like other people. I’ll show that George
Willard. He’ll find out. I’ll show him!”</p>
<p>The distraught young man stood in the middle of the road and glared back at the
town. He did not know the reporter George Willard and had no special feeling
concerning the tall boy who ran about town gathering the town news. The
reporter had merely come, by his presence in the office and in the printshop of
the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i>, to stand for something in the young
merchant’s mind. He thought the boy who passed and repassed Cowley &
Son’s store and who stopped to talk to people in the street must be
thinking of him and perhaps laughing at him. George Willard, he felt, belonged
to the town, typified the town, represented in his person the spirit of the
town. Elmer Cowley could not have believed that George Willard had also his
days of unhappiness, that vague hungers and secret unnamable desires visited
also his mind. Did he not represent public opinion and had not the public
opinion of Winesburg condemned the Cowleys to queerness? Did he not walk
whistling and laughing through Main Street? Might not one by striking his
person strike also the greater enemy—the thing that smiled and went its
own way—the judgment of Winesburg?</p>
<p>Elmer Cowley was extraordinarily tall and his arms were long and powerful. His
hair, his eyebrows, and the downy beard that had begun to grow upon his chin,
were pale almost to whiteness. His teeth protruded from between his lips and
his eyes were blue with the colorless blueness of the marbles called
“aggies” that the boys of Winesburg carried in their pockets. Elmer
had lived in Winesburg for a year and had made no friends. He was, he felt, one
condemned to go through life without friends and he hated the thought.</p>
<p>Sullenly the tall young man tramped along the road with his hands stuffed into
his trouser pockets. The day was cold with a raw wind, but presently the sun
began to shine and the road became soft and muddy. The tops of the ridges of
frozen mud that formed the road began to melt and the mud clung to
Elmer’s shoes. His feet became cold. When he had gone several miles he
turned off the road, crossed a field and entered a wood. In the wood he
gathered sticks to build a fire, by which he sat trying to warm himself,
miserable in body and in mind.</p>
<p>For two hours he sat on the log by the fire and then, arising and creeping
cautiously through a mass of underbrush, he went to a fence and looked across
fields to a small farmhouse surrounded by low sheds. A smile came to his lips
and he began making motions with his long arms to a man who was husking corn in
one of the fields.</p>
<p>In his hour of misery the young merchant had returned to the farm where he had
lived through boyhood and where there was another human being to whom he felt
he could explain himself. The man on the farm was a half-witted old fellow
named Mook. He had once been employed by Ebenezer Cowley and had stayed on the
farm when it was sold. The old man lived in one of the unpainted sheds back of
the farmhouse and puttered about all day in the fields.</p>
<p>Mook the half-wit lived happily. With childlike faith he believed in the
intelligence of the animals that lived in the sheds with him, and when he was
lonely held long conversations with the cows, the pigs, and even with the
chickens that ran about the barnyard. He it was who had put the expression
regarding being “laundered” into the mouth of his former employer.
When excited or surprised by anything he smiled vaguely and muttered:
“I’ll be washed and ironed. Well, well, I’ll be washed and
ironed and starched.”</p>
<p>When the half-witted old man left his husking of corn and came into the wood to
meet Elmer Cowley, he was neither surprised nor especially interested in the
sudden appearance of the young man. His feet also were cold and he sat on the
log by the fire, grateful for the warmth and apparently indifferent to what
Elmer had to say.</p>
<p>Elmer talked earnestly and with great freedom, walking up and down and waving
his arms about. “You don’t understand what’s the matter with
me so of course you don’t care,” he declared. “With me
it’s different. Look how it has always been with me. Father is queer and
mother was queer, too. Even the clothes mother used to wear were not like other
people’s clothes, and look at that coat in which father goes about there
in town, thinking he’s dressed up, too. Why don’t he get a new one?
It wouldn’t cost much. I’ll tell you why. Father doesn’t know
and when mother was alive she didn’t know either. Mabel is different. She
knows but she won’t say anything. I will, though. I’m not going to
be stared at any longer. Why look here, Mook, father doesn’t know that
his store there in town is just a queer jumble, that he’ll never sell the
stuff he buys. He knows nothing about it. Sometimes he’s a little worried
that trade doesn’t come and then he goes and buys something else. In the
evenings he sits by the fire upstairs and says trade will come after a while.
He isn’t worried. He’s queer. He doesn’t know enough to be
worried.”</p>
<p>The excited young man became more excited. “He don’t know but I
know,” he shouted, stopping to gaze down into the dumb, unresponsive face
of the half-wit. “I know too well. I can’t stand it. When we lived
out here it was different. I worked and at night I went to bed and slept. I
wasn’t always seeing people and thinking as I am now. In the evening,
there in town, I go to the post office or to the depot to see the train come
in, and no one says anything to me. Everyone stands around and laughs and they
talk but they say nothing to me. Then I feel so queer that I can’t talk
either. I go away. I don’t say anything. I can’t.”</p>
<p>The fury of the young man became uncontrollable. “I won’t stand
it,” he yelled, looking up at the bare branches of the trees.
“I’m not made to stand it.”</p>
<p>Maddened by the dull face of the man on the log by the fire, Elmer turned and
glared at him as he had glared back along the road at the town of Winesburg.
“Go on back to work,” he screamed. “What good does it do me
to talk to you?” A thought came to him and his voice dropped.
“I’m a coward too, eh?” he muttered. “Do you know why I
came clear out here afoot? I had to tell someone and you were the only one I
could tell. I hunted out another queer one, you see. I ran away, that’s
what I did. I couldn’t stand up to someone like that George Willard. I
had to come to you. I ought to tell him and I will.”</p>
<p>Again his voice arose to a shout and his arms flew about. “I will tell
him. I won’t be queer. I don’t care what they think. I won’t
stand it.”</p>
<p>Elmer Cowley ran out of the woods leaving the half-wit sitting on the log
before the fire. Presently the old man arose and climbing over the fence went
back to his work in the corn. “I’ll be washed and ironed and
starched,” he declared. “Well, well, I’ll be washed and
ironed.” Mook was interested. He went along a lane to a field where two
cows stood nibbling at a straw stack. “Elmer was here,” he said to
the cows. “Elmer is crazy. You better get behind the stack where he
don’t see you. He’ll hurt someone yet, Elmer will.”</p>
<p>At eight o’clock that evening Elmer Cowley put his head in at the front
door of the office of the <i>Winesburg Eagle</i> where George Willard sat
writing. His cap was pulled down over his eyes and a sullen determined look was
on his face. “You come on outside with me,” he said, stepping in
and closing the door. He kept his hand on the knob as though prepared to resist
anyone else coming in. “You just come along outside. I want to see
you.”</p>
<p>George Willard and Elmer Cowley walked through the main street of Winesburg.
The night was cold and George Willard had on a new overcoat and looked very
spruce and dressed up. He thrust his hands into the overcoat pockets and looked
inquiringly at his companion. He had long been wanting to make friends with the
young merchant and find out what was in his mind. Now he thought he saw a
chance and was delighted. “I wonder what he’s up to? Perhaps he
thinks he has a piece of news for the paper. It can’t be a fire because I
haven’t heard the fire bell and there isn’t anyone running,”
he thought.</p>
<p>In the main street of Winesburg, on the cold November evening, but few citizens
appeared and these hurried along bent on getting to the stove at the back of
some store. The windows of the stores were frosted and the wind rattled the tin
sign that hung over the entrance to the stairway leading to Doctor
Welling’s office. Before Hern’s Grocery a basket of apples and a
rack filled with new brooms stood on the sidewalk. Elmer Cowley stopped and
stood facing George Willard. He tried to talk and his arms began to pump up and
down. His face worked spasmodically. He seemed about to shout. “Oh, you
go on back,” he cried. “Don’t stay out here with me. I
ain’t got anything to tell you. I don’t want to see you at
all.”</p>
<p>For three hours the distracted young merchant wandered through the resident
streets of Winesburg blind with anger, brought on by his failure to declare his
determination not to be queer. Bitterly the sense of defeat settled upon him
and he wanted to weep. After the hours of futile sputtering at nothingness that
had occupied the afternoon and his failure in the presence of the young
reporter, he thought he could see no hope of a future for himself.</p>
<p>And then a new idea dawned for him. In the darkness that surrounded him he
began to see a light. Going to the now darkened store, where Cowley & Son
had for over a year waited vainly for trade to come, he crept stealthily in and
felt about in a barrel that stood by the stove at the rear. In the barrel
beneath shavings lay a tin box containing Cowley & Son’s cash. Every
evening Ebenezer Cowley put the box in the barrel when he closed the store and
went upstairs to bed. “They wouldn’t never think of a careless
place like that,” he told himself, thinking of robbers.</p>
<p>Elmer took twenty dollars, two ten-dollar bills, from the little roll
containing perhaps four hundred dollars, the cash left from the sale of the
farm. Then replacing the box beneath the shavings he went quietly out at the
front door and walked again in the streets.</p>
<p>The idea that he thought might put an end to all of his unhappiness was very
simple. “I will get out of here, run away from home,” he told
himself. He knew that a local freight train passed through Winesburg at
midnight and went on to Cleveland, where it arrived at dawn. He would steal a
ride on the local and when he got to Cleveland would lose himself in the crowds
there. He would get work in some shop and become friends with the other workmen
and would be indistinguishable. Then he could talk and laugh. He would no
longer be queer and would make friends. Life would begin to have warmth and
meaning for him as it had for others.</p>
<p>The tall awkward young man, striding through the streets, laughed at himself
because he had been angry and had been half afraid of George Willard. He
decided he would have his talk with the young reporter before he left town,
that he would tell him about things, perhaps challenge him, challenge all of
Winesburg through him.</p>
<p>Aglow with new confidence Elmer went to the office of the New Willard House and
pounded on the door. A sleep-eyed boy slept on a cot in the office. He received
no salary but was fed at the hotel table and bore with pride the title of
“night clerk.” Before the boy Elmer was bold, insistent. “You
‘wake him up,” he commanded. “You tell him to come down by
the depot. I got to see him and I’m going away on the local. Tell him to
dress and come on down. I ain’t got much time.”</p>
<p>The midnight local had finished its work in Winesburg and the trainsmen were
coupling cars, swinging lanterns and preparing to resume their flight east.
George Willard, rubbing his eyes and again wearing the new overcoat, ran down
to the station platform afire with curiosity. “Well, here I am. What do
you want? You’ve got something to tell me, eh?” he said.</p>
<p>Elmer tried to explain. He wet his lips with his tongue and looked at the train
that had begun to groan and get under way. “Well, you see,” he
began, and then lost control of his tongue. “I’ll be washed and
ironed. I’ll be washed and ironed and starched,” he muttered half
incoherently.</p>
<p>Elmer Cowley danced with fury beside the groaning train in the darkness on the
station platform. Lights leaped into the air and bobbed up and down before his
eyes. Taking the two ten-dollar bills from his pocket he thrust them into
George Willard’s hand. “Take them,” he cried. “I
don’t want them. Give them to father. I stole them.” With a snarl
of rage he turned and his long arms began to flay the air. Like one struggling
for release from hands that held him he struck out, hitting George Willard blow
after blow on the breast, the neck, the mouth. The young reporter rolled over
on the platform half unconscious, stunned by the terrific force of the blows.
Springing aboard the passing train and running over the tops of cars, Elmer
sprang down to a flat car and lying on his face looked back, trying to see the
fallen man in the darkness. Pride surged up in him. “I showed him,”
he cried. “I guess I showed him. I ain’t so queer. I guess I showed
him I ain’t so queer.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap21"></SPAN>THE UNTOLD LIE</h2>
<p>Ray Pearson and Hal Winters were farm hands employed on a farm three miles
north of Winesburg. On Saturday afternoons they came into town and wandered
about through the streets with other fellows from the country.</p>
<p>Ray was a quiet, rather nervous man of perhaps fifty with a brown beard and
shoulders rounded by too much and too hard labor. In his nature he was as
unlike Hal Winters as two men can be unlike.</p>
<p>Ray was an altogether serious man and had a little sharp-featured wife who had
also a sharp voice. The two, with half a dozen thin-legged children, lived in a
tumble-down frame house beside a creek at the back end of the Wills farm where
Ray was employed.</p>
<p>Hal Winters, his fellow employee, was a young fellow. He was not of the Ned
Winters family, who were very respectable people in Winesburg, but was one of
the three sons of the old man called Windpeter Winters who had a sawmill near
Unionville, six miles away, and who was looked upon by everyone in Winesburg as
a confirmed old reprobate.</p>
<p>People from the part of Northern Ohio in which Winesburg lies will remember old
Windpeter by his unusual and tragic death. He got drunk one evening in town and
started to drive home to Unionville along the railroad tracks. Henry
Brattenburg, the butcher, who lived out that way, stopped him at the edge of
the town and told him he was sure to meet the down train but Windpeter slashed
at him with his whip and drove on. When the train struck and killed him and his
two horses a farmer and his wife who were driving home along a nearby road saw
the accident. They said that old Windpeter stood up on the seat of his wagon,
raving and swearing at the onrushing locomotive, and that he fairly screamed
with delight when the team, maddened by his incessant slashing at them, rushed
straight ahead to certain death. Boys like young George Willard and Seth
Richmond will remember the incident quite vividly because, although everyone in
our town said that the old man would go straight to hell and that the community
was better off without him, they had a secret conviction that he knew what he
was doing and admired his foolish courage. Most boys have seasons of wishing
they could die gloriously instead of just being grocery clerks and going on
with their humdrum lives.</p>
<p>But this is not the story of Windpeter Winters nor yet of his son Hal who
worked on the Wills farm with Ray Pearson. It is Ray’s story. It will,
however, be necessary to talk a little of young Hal so that you will get into
the spirit of it.</p>
<p>Hal was a bad one. Everyone said that. There were three of the Winters boys in
that family, John, Hal, and Edward, all broad-shouldered big fellows like old
Windpeter himself and all fighters and woman-chasers and generally all-around
bad ones.</p>
<p>Hal was the worst of the lot and always up to some devilment. He once stole a
load of boards from his father’s mill and sold them in Winesburg. With
the money he bought himself a suit of cheap, flashy clothes. Then he got drunk
and when his father came raving into town to find him, they met and fought with
their fists on Main Street and were arrested and put into jail together.</p>
<p>Hal went to work on the Wills farm because there was a country school teacher
out that way who had taken his fancy. He was only twenty-two then but had
already been in two or three of what were spoken of in Winesburg as
“women scrapes.” Everyone who heard of his infatuation for the
school teacher was sure it would turn out badly. “He’ll only get
her into trouble, you’ll see,” was the word that went around.</p>
<p>And so these two men, Ray and Hal, were at work in a field on a day in the late
October. They were husking corn and occasionally something was said and they
laughed. Then came silence. Ray, who was the more sensitive and always minded
things more, had chapped hands and they hurt. He put them into his coat pockets
and looked away across the fields. He was in a sad, distracted mood and was
affected by the beauty of the country. If you knew the Winesburg country in the
fall and how the low hills are all splashed with yellows and reds you would
understand his feeling. He began to think of the time, long ago when he was a
young fellow living with his father, then a baker in Winesburg, and how on such
days he had wandered away into the woods to gather nuts, hunt rabbits, or just
to loaf about and smoke his pipe. His marriage had come about through one of
his days of wandering. He had induced a girl who waited on trade in his
father’s shop to go with him and something had happened. He was thinking
of that afternoon and how it had affected his whole life when a spirit of
protest awoke in him. He had forgotten about Hal and muttered words.
“Tricked by Gad, that’s what I was, tricked by life and made a fool
of,” he said in a low voice.</p>
<p>As though understanding his thoughts, Hal Winters spoke up. “Well, has it
been worth while? What about it, eh? What about marriage and all that?”
he asked and then laughed. Hal tried to keep on laughing but he too was in an
earnest mood. He began to talk earnestly. “Has a fellow got to do
it?” he asked. “Has he got to be harnessed up and driven through
life like a horse?”</p>
<p>Hal didn’t wait for an answer but sprang to his feet and began to walk
back and forth between the corn shocks. He was getting more and more excited.
Bending down suddenly he picked up an ear of the yellow corn and threw it at
the fence. “I’ve got Nell Gunther in trouble,” he said.
“I’m telling you, but you keep your mouth shut.”</p>
<p>Ray Pearson arose and stood staring. He was almost a foot shorter than Hal, and
when the younger man came and put his two hands on the older man’s
shoulders they made a picture. There they stood in the big empty field with the
quiet corn shocks standing in rows behind them and the red and yellow hills in
the distance, and from being just two indifferent workmen they had become all
alive to each other. Hal sensed it and because that was his way he laughed.
“Well, old daddy,” he said awkwardly, “come on, advise me.
I’ve got Nell in trouble. Perhaps you’ve been in the same fix
yourself. I know what everyone would say is the right thing to do, but what do
you say? Shall I marry and settle down? Shall I put myself into the harness to
be worn out like an old horse? You know me, Ray. There can’t anyone break
me but I can break myself. Shall I do it or shall I tell Nell to go to the
devil? Come on, you tell me. Whatever you say, Ray, I’ll do.”</p>
<p>Ray couldn’t answer. He shook Hal’s hands loose and turning walked
straight away toward the barn. He was a sensitive man and there were tears in
his eyes. He knew there was only one thing to say to Hal Winters, son of old
Windpeter Winters, only one thing that all his own training and all the beliefs
of the people he knew would approve, but for his life he couldn’t say
what he knew he should say.</p>
<p>At half-past four that afternoon Ray was puttering about the barnyard when his
wife came up the lane along the creek and called him. After the talk with Hal
he hadn’t returned to the cornfield but worked about the barn. He had
already done the evening chores and had seen Hal, dressed and ready for a
roistering night in town, come out of the farmhouse and go into the road. Along
the path to his own house he trudged behind his wife, looking at the ground and
thinking. He couldn’t make out what was wrong. Every time he raised his
eyes and saw the beauty of the country in the failing light he wanted to do
something he had never done before, shout or scream or hit his wife with his
fists or something equally unexpected and terrifying. Along the path he went
scratching his head and trying to make it out. He looked hard at his
wife’s back but she seemed all right.</p>
<p>She only wanted him to go into town for groceries and as soon as she had told
him what she wanted began to scold. “You’re always
puttering,” she said. “Now I want you to hustle. There isn’t
anything in the house for supper and you’ve got to get to town and back
in a hurry.”</p>
<p>Ray went into his own house and took an overcoat from a hook back of the door.
It was torn about the pockets and the collar was shiny. His wife went into the
bedroom and presently came out with a soiled cloth in one hand and three silver
dollars in the other. Somewhere in the house a child wept bitterly and a dog
that had been sleeping by the stove arose and yawned. Again the wife scolded.
“The children will cry and cry. Why are you always puttering?” she
asked.</p>
<p>Ray went out of the house and climbed the fence into a field. It was just
growing dark and the scene that lay before him was lovely. All the low hills
were washed with color and even the little clusters of bushes in the corners of
the fences were alive with beauty. The whole world seemed to Ray Pearson to
have become alive with something just as he and Hal had suddenly become alive
when they stood in the corn field staring into each other’s eyes.</p>
<p>The beauty of the country about Winesburg was too much for Ray on that fall
evening. That is all there was to it. He could not stand it. Of a sudden he
forgot all about being a quiet old farm hand and throwing off the torn overcoat
began to run across the field. As he ran he shouted a protest against his life,
against all life, against everything that makes life ugly. “There was no
promise made,” he cried into the empty spaces that lay about him.
“I didn’t promise my Minnie anything and Hal hasn’t made any
promise to Nell. I know he hasn’t. She went into the woods with him
because she wanted to go. What he wanted she wanted. Why should I pay? Why
should Hal pay? Why should anyone pay? I don’t want Hal to become old and
worn out. I’ll tell him. I won’t let it go on. I’ll catch Hal
before he gets to town and I’ll tell him.”</p>
<p>Ray ran clumsily and once he stumbled and fell down. “I must catch Hal
and tell him,” he kept thinking, and although his breath came in gasps he
kept running harder and harder. As he ran he thought of things that
hadn’t come into his mind for years—how at the time he married he
had planned to go west to his uncle in Portland, Oregon—how he
hadn’t wanted to be a farm hand, but had thought when he got out West he
would go to sea and be a sailor or get a job on a ranch and ride a horse into
Western towns, shouting and laughing and waking the people in the houses with
his wild cries. Then as he ran he remembered his children and in fancy felt
their hands clutching at him. All of his thoughts of himself were involved with
the thoughts of Hal and he thought the children were clutching at the younger
man also. “They are the accidents of life, Hal,” he cried.
“They are not mine or yours. I had nothing to do with them.”</p>
<p>Darkness began to spread over the fields as Ray Pearson ran on and on. His
breath came in little sobs. When he came to the fence at the edge of the road
and confronted Hal Winters, all dressed up and smoking a pipe as he walked
jauntily along, he could not have told what he thought or what he wanted.</p>
<p>Ray Pearson lost his nerve and this is really the end of the story of what
happened to him. It was almost dark when he got to the fence and he put his
hands on the top bar and stood staring. Hal Winters jumped a ditch and coming
up close to Ray put his hands into his pockets and laughed. He seemed to have
lost his own sense of what had happened in the corn field and when he put up a
strong hand and took hold of the lapel of Ray’s coat he shook the old man
as he might have shaken a dog that had misbehaved.</p>
<p>“You came to tell me, eh?” he said. “Well, never mind telling
me anything. I’m not a coward and I’ve already made up my
mind.” He laughed again and jumped back across the ditch. “Nell
ain’t no fool,” he said. “She didn’t ask me to marry
her. I want to marry her. I want to settle down and have kids.”</p>
<p>Ray Pearson also laughed. He felt like laughing at himself and all the world.</p>
<p>As the form of Hal Winters disappeared in the dusk that lay over the road that
led to Winesburg, he turned and walked slowly back across the fields to where
he had left his torn overcoat. As he went some memory of pleasant evenings
spent with the thin-legged children in the tumble-down house by the creek must
have come into his mind, for he muttered words. “It’s just as well.
Whatever I told him would have been a lie,” he said softly, and then his
form also disappeared into the darkness of the fields.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap22"></SPAN>DRINK</h2>
<p>Tom Foster came to Winesburg from Cincinnati when he was still young and could
get many new impressions. His grandmother had been raised on a farm near the
town and as a young girl had gone to school there when Winesburg was a village
of twelve or fifteen houses clustered about a general store on the Trunion
Pike.</p>
<p>What a life the old woman had led since she went away from the frontier
settlement and what a strong, capable little old thing she was! She had been in
Kansas, in Canada, and in New York City, traveling about with her husband, a
mechanic, before he died. Later she went to stay with her daughter, who had
also married a mechanic and lived in Covington, Kentucky, across the river from
Cincinnati.</p>
<p>Then began the hard years for Tom Foster’s grandmother. First her
son-in-law was killed by a policeman during a strike and then Tom’s
mother became an invalid and died also. The grandmother had saved a little
money, but it was swept away by the illness of the daughter and by the cost of
the two funerals. She became a half worn-out old woman worker and lived with
the grandson above a junk shop on a side street in Cincinnati. For five years
she scrubbed the floors in an office building and then got a place as dish
washer in a restaurant. Her hands were all twisted out of shape. When she took
hold of a mop or a broom handle the hands looked like the dried stems of an old
creeping vine clinging to a tree.</p>
<p>The old woman came back to Winesburg as soon as she got the chance. One evening
as she was coming home from work she found a pocket-book containing
thirty-seven dollars, and that opened the way. The trip was a great adventure
for the boy. It was past seven o’clock at night when the grandmother came
home with the pocket-book held tightly in her old hands and she was so excited
she could scarcely speak. She insisted on leaving Cincinnati that night, saying
that if they stayed until morning the owner of the money would be sure to find
them out and make trouble. Tom, who was then sixteen years old, had to go
trudging off to the station with the old woman, bearing all of their earthly
belongings done up in a worn-out blanket and slung across his back. By his side
walked the grandmother urging him forward. Her toothless old mouth twitched
nervously, and when Tom grew weary and wanted to put the pack down at a street
crossing, she snatched it up and if he had not prevented would have slung it
across her own back. When they got into the train and it had run out of the
city she was as delighted as a girl and talked as the boy had never heard her
talk before.</p>
<p>All through the night as the train rattled along, the grandmother told Tom
tales of Winesburg and of how he would enjoy his life working in the fields and
shooting wild things in the woods there. She could not believe that the tiny
village of fifty years before had grown into a thriving town in her absence,
and in the morning when the train came to Winesburg did not want to get off.
“It isn’t what I thought. It may be hard for you here,” she
said, and then the train went on its way and the two stood confused, not
knowing where to turn, in the presence of Albert Longworth, the Winesburg
baggage master.</p>
<p>But Tom Foster did get along all right. He was one to get along anywhere. Mrs.
White, the banker’s wife, employed his grandmother to work in the kitchen
and he got a place as stable boy in the banker’s new brick barn.</p>
<p>In Winesburg servants were hard to get. The woman who wanted help in her
housework employed a “hired girl” who insisted on sitting at the
table with the family. Mrs. White was sick of hired girls and snatched at the
chance to get hold of the old city woman. She furnished a room for the boy Tom
upstairs in the barn. “He can mow the lawn and run errands when the
horses do not need attention,” she explained to her husband.</p>
<p>Tom Foster was rather small for his age and had a large head covered with stiff
black hair that stood straight up. The hair emphasized the bigness of his head.
His voice was the softest thing imaginable, and he was himself so gentle and
quiet that he slipped into the life of the town without attracting the least
bit of attention.</p>
<p>One could not help wondering where Tom Foster got his gentleness. In Cincinnati
he had lived in a neighborhood where gangs of tough boys prowled through the
streets, and all through his early formative years he ran about with tough
boys. For a while he was a messenger for a telegraph company and delivered
messages in a neighborhood sprinkled with houses of prostitution. The women in
the houses knew and loved Tom Foster and the tough boys in the gangs loved him
also.</p>
<p>He never asserted himself. That was one thing that helped him escape. In an odd
way he stood in the shadow of the wall of life, was meant to stand in the
shadow. He saw the men and women in the houses of lust, sensed their casual and
horrible love affairs, saw boys fighting and listened to their tales of
thieving and drunkenness, unmoved and strangely unaffected.</p>
<p>Once Tom did steal. That was while he still lived in the city. The grandmother
was ill at the time and he himself was out of work. There was nothing to eat in
the house, and so he went into a harness shop on a side street and stole a
dollar and seventy-five cents out of the cash drawer.</p>
<p>The harness shop was run by an old man with a long mustache. He saw the boy
lurking about and thought nothing of it. When he went out into the street to
talk to a teamster Tom opened the cash drawer and taking the money walked away.
Later he was caught and his grandmother settled the matter by offering to come
twice a week for a month and scrub the shop. The boy was ashamed, but he was
rather glad, too. “It is all right to be ashamed and makes me understand
new things,” he said to the grandmother, who didn’t know what the
boy was talking about but loved him so much that it didn’t matter whether
she understood or not.</p>
<p>For a year Tom Foster lived in the banker’s stable and then lost his
place there. He didn’t take very good care of the horses and he was a
constant source of irritation to the banker’s wife. She told him to mow
the lawn and he forgot. Then she sent him to the store or to the post office
and he did not come back but joined a group of men and boys and spent the whole
afternoon with them, standing about, listening and occasionally, when
addressed, saying a few words. As in the city in the houses of prostitution and
with the rowdy boys running through the streets at night, so in Winesburg among
its citizens he had always the power to be a part of and yet distinctly apart
from the life about him.</p>
<p>After Tom lost his place at Banker White’s he did not live with his
grandmother, although often in the evening she came to visit him. He rented a
room at the rear of a little frame building belonging to old Rufus Whiting. The
building was on Duane Street, just off Main Street, and had been used for years
as a law office by the old man, who had become too feeble and forgetful for the
practice of his profession but did not realize his inefficiency. He liked Tom
and let him have the room for a dollar a month. In the late afternoon when the
lawyer had gone home the boy had the place to himself and spent hours lying on
the floor by the stove and thinking of things. In the evening the grandmother
came and sat in the lawyer’s chair to smoke a pipe while Tom remained
silent, as he always did in the presence of everyone.</p>
<p>Often the old woman talked with great vigor. Sometimes she was angry about some
happening at the banker’s house and scolded away for hours. Out of her
own earnings she bought a mop and regularly scrubbed the lawyer’s office.
Then when the place was spotlessly clean and smelled clean she lighted her clay
pipe and she and Tom had a smoke together. “When you get ready to die
then I will die also,” she said to the boy lying on the floor beside her
chair.</p>
<p>Tom Foster enjoyed life in Winesburg. He did odd jobs, such as cutting wood for
kitchen stoves and mowing the grass before houses. In late May and early June
he picked strawberries in the fields. He had time to loaf and he enjoyed
loafing. Banker White had given him a cast-off coat which was too large for
him, but his grandmother cut it down, and he had also an overcoat, got at the
same place, that was lined with fur. The fur was worn away in spots, but the
coat was warm and in the winter Tom slept in it. He thought his method of
getting along good enough and was happy and satisfied with the way life in
Winesburg had turned out for him.</p>
<p>The most absurd little things made Tom Foster happy. That, I suppose, was why
people loved him. In Hern’s Grocery they would be roasting coffee on
Friday afternoon, preparatory to the Saturday rush of trade, and the rich odor
invaded lower Main Street. Tom Foster appeared and sat on a box at the rear of
the store. For an hour he did not move but sat perfectly still, filling his
being with the spicy odor that made him half drunk with happiness. “I
like it,” he said gently. “It makes me think of things far away,
places and things like that.”</p>
<p>One night Tom Foster got drunk. That came about in a curious way. He never had
been drunk before, and indeed in all his life had never taken a drink of
anything intoxicating, but he felt he needed to be drunk that one time and so
went and did it.</p>
<p>In Cincinnati, when he lived there, Tom had found out many things, things about
ugliness and crime and lust. Indeed, he knew more of these things than anyone
else in Winesburg. The matter of sex in particular had presented itself to him
in a quite horrible way and had made a deep impression on his mind. He thought,
after what he had seen of the women standing before the squalid houses on cold
nights and the look he had seen in the eyes of the men who stopped to talk to
them, that he would put sex altogether out of his own life. One of the women of
the neighborhood tempted him once and he went into a room with her. He never
forgot the smell of the room nor the greedy look that came into the eyes of the
woman. It sickened him and in a very terrible way left a scar on his soul. He
had always before thought of women as quite innocent things, much like his
grandmother, but after that one experience in the room he dismissed women from
his mind. So gentle was his nature that he could not hate anything and not
being able to understand he decided to forget.</p>
<p>And Tom did forget until he came to Winesburg. After he had lived there for two
years something began to stir in him. On all sides he saw youth making love and
he was himself a youth. Before he knew what had happened he was in love also.
He fell in love with Helen White, daughter of the man for whom he had worked,
and found himself thinking of her at night.</p>
<p>That was a problem for Tom and he settled it in his own way. He let himself
think of Helen White whenever her figure came into his mind and only concerned
himself with the manner of his thoughts. He had a fight, a quiet determined
little fight of his own, to keep his desires in the channel where he thought
they belonged, but on the whole he was victorious.</p>
<p>And then came the spring night when he got drunk. Tom was wild on that night.
He was like an innocent young buck of the forest that has eaten of some
maddening weed. The thing began, ran its course, and was ended in one night,
and you may be sure that no one in Winesburg was any the worse for Tom’s
outbreak.</p>
<p>In the first place, the night was one to make a sensitive nature drunk. The
trees along the residence streets of the town were all newly clothed in soft
green leaves, in the gardens behind the houses men were puttering about in
vegetable gardens, and in the air there was a hush, a waiting kind of silence
very stirring to the blood.</p>
<p>Tom left his room on Duane Street just as the young night began to make itself
felt. First he walked through the streets, going softly and quietly along,
thinking thoughts that he tried to put into words. He said that Helen White was
a flame dancing in the air and that he was a little tree without leaves
standing out sharply against the sky. Then he said that she was a wind, a
strong terrible wind, coming out of the darkness of a stormy sea and that he
was a boat left on the shore of the sea by a fisherman.</p>
<p>That idea pleased the boy and he sauntered along playing with it. He went into
Main Street and sat on the curbing before Wacker’s tobacco store. For an
hour he lingered about listening to the talk of men, but it did not interest
him much and he slipped away. Then he decided to get drunk and went into
Willy’s saloon and bought a bottle of whiskey. Putting the bottle into
his pocket, he walked out of town, wanting to be alone to think more thoughts
and to drink the whiskey.</p>
<p>Tom got drunk sitting on a bank of new grass beside the road about a mile north
of town. Before him was a white road and at his back an apple orchard in full
bloom. He took a drink out of the bottle and then lay down on the grass. He
thought of mornings in Winesburg and of how the stones in the graveled driveway
by Banker White’s house were wet with dew and glistened in the morning
light. He thought of the nights in the barn when it rained and he lay awake
hearing the drumming of the raindrops and smelling the warm smell of horses and
of hay. Then he thought of a storm that had gone roaring through Winesburg
several days before and, his mind going back, he relived the night he had spent
on the train with his grandmother when the two were coming from Cincinnati.
Sharply he remembered how strange it had seemed to sit quietly in the coach and
to feel the power of the engine hurling the train along through the night.</p>
<p>Tom got drunk in a very short time. He kept taking drinks from the bottle as
the thoughts visited him and when his head began to reel got up and walked
along the road going away from Winesburg. There was a bridge on the road that
ran out of Winesburg north to Lake Erie and the drunken boy made his way along
the road to the bridge. There he sat down. He tried to drink again, but when he
had taken the cork out of the bottle he became ill and put it quickly back. His
head was rocking back and forth and so he sat on the stone approach to the
bridge and sighed. His head seemed to be flying about like a pinwheel and then
projecting itself off into space and his arms and legs flopped helplessly
about.</p>
<p>At eleven o’clock Tom got back into town. George Willard found him
wandering about and took him into the <i>Eagle</i> printshop. Then he became
afraid that the drunken boy would make a mess on the floor and helped him into
the alleyway.</p>
<p>The reporter was confused by Tom Foster. The drunken boy talked of Helen White
and said he had been with her on the shore of a sea and had made love to her.
George had seen Helen White walking in the street with her father during the
evening and decided that Tom was out of his head. A sentiment concerning Helen
White that lurked in his own heart flamed up and he became angry. “Now
you quit that,” he said. “I won’t let Helen White’s
name be dragged into this. I won’t let that happen.” He began
shaking Tom’s shoulder, trying to make him understand. “You quit
it,” he said again.</p>
<p>For three hours the two young men, thus strangely thrown together, stayed in
the printshop. When he had a little recovered George took Tom for a walk. They
went into the country and sat on a log near the edge of a wood. Something in
the still night drew them together and when the drunken boy’s head began
to clear they talked.</p>
<p>“It was good to be drunk,” Tom Foster said. “It taught me
something. I won’t have to do it again. I will think more dearly after
this. You see how it is.”</p>
<p>George Willard did not see, but his anger concerning Helen White passed and he
felt drawn toward the pale, shaken boy as he had never before been drawn toward
anyone. With motherly solicitude, he insisted that Tom get to his feet and walk
about. Again they went back to the printshop and sat in silence in the
darkness.</p>
<p>The reporter could not get the purpose of Tom Foster’s action
straightened out in his mind. When Tom spoke again of Helen White he again grew
angry and began to scold. “You quit that,” he said sharply.
“You haven’t been with her. What makes you say you have? What makes
you keep saying such things? Now you quit it, do you hear?”</p>
<p>Tom was hurt. He couldn’t quarrel with George Willard because he was
incapable of quarreling, so he got up to go away. When George Willard was
insistent he put out his hand, laying it on the older boy’s arm, and
tried to explain.</p>
<p>“Well,” he said softly, “I don’t know how it was. I was
happy. You see how that was. Helen White made me happy and the night did too. I
wanted to suffer, to be hurt somehow. I thought that was what I should do. I
wanted to suffer, you see, because everyone suffers and does wrong. I thought
of a lot of things to do, but they wouldn’t work. They all hurt someone
else.”</p>
<p>Tom Foster’s voice arose, and for once in his life he became almost
excited. “It was like making love, that’s what I mean,” he
explained. “Don’t you see how it is? It hurt me to do what I did
and made everything strange. That’s why I did it. I’m glad, too. It
taught me something, that’s it, that’s what I wanted. Don’t
you understand? I wanted to learn things, you see. That’s why I did
it.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap23"></SPAN>DEATH</h2>
<p>The stairway leading up to Doctor Reefy’s office, in the Heffner Block
above the Paris Dry Goods store, was but dimly lighted. At the head of the
stairway hung a lamp with a dirty chimney that was fastened by a bracket to the
wall. The lamp had a tin reflector, brown with rust and covered with dust. The
people who went up the stairway followed with their feet the feet of many who
had gone before. The soft boards of the stairs had yielded under the pressure
of feet and deep hollows marked the way.</p>
<p>At the top of the stairway a turn to the right brought you to the
doctor’s door. To the left was a dark hallway filled with rubbish. Old
chairs, carpenter’s horses, step ladders and empty boxes lay in the
darkness waiting for shins to be barked. The pile of rubbish belonged to the
Paris Dry Goods Company. When a counter or a row of shelves in the store became
useless, clerks carried it up the stairway and threw it on the pile.</p>
<p>Doctor Reefy’s office was as large as a barn. A stove with a round paunch
sat in the middle of the room. Around its base was piled sawdust, held in place
by heavy planks nailed to the floor. By the door stood a huge table that had
once been a part of the furniture of Herrick’s Clothing Store and that
had been used for displaying custom-made clothes. It was covered with books,
bottles, and surgical instruments. Near the edge of the table lay three or four
apples left by John Spaniard, a tree nurseryman who was Doctor Reefy’s
friend, and who had slipped the apples out of his pocket as he came in at the
door.</p>
<p>At middle age Doctor Reefy was tall and awkward. The grey beard he later wore
had not yet appeared, but on the upper lip grew a brown mustache. He was not a
graceful man, as when he grew older, and was much occupied with the problem of
disposing of his hands and feet.</p>
<p>On summer afternoons, when she had been married many years and when her son
George was a boy of twelve or fourteen, Elizabeth Willard sometimes went up the
worn steps to Doctor Reefy’s office. Already the woman’s naturally
tall figure had begun to droop and to drag itself listlessly about. Ostensibly
she went to see the doctor because of her health, but on the half dozen
occasions when she had been to see him the outcome of the visits did not
primarily concern her health. She and the doctor talked of that but they talked
most of her life, of their two lives and of the ideas that had come to them as
they lived their lives in Winesburg.</p>
<p>In the big empty office the man and the woman sat looking at each other and
they were a good deal alike. Their bodies were different, as were also the
color of their eyes, the length of their noses, and the circumstances of their
existence, but something inside them meant the same thing, wanted the same
release, would have left the same impression on the memory of an onlooker.
Later, and when he grew older and married a young wife, the doctor often talked
to her of the hours spent with the sick woman and expressed a good many things
he had been unable to express to Elizabeth. He was almost a poet in his old age
and his notion of what happened took a poetic turn. “I had come to the
time in my life when prayer became necessary and so I invented gods and prayed
to them,” he said. “I did not say my prayers in words nor did I
kneel down but sat perfectly still in my chair. In the late afternoon when it
was hot and quiet on Main Street or in the winter when the days were gloomy,
the gods came into the office and I thought no one knew about them. Then I
found that this woman Elizabeth knew, that she worshipped also the same gods. I
have a notion that she came to the office because she thought the gods would be
there but she was happy to find herself not alone just the same. It was an
experience that cannot be explained, although I suppose it is always happening
to men and women in all sorts of places.”</p>
<hr />
<p>On the summer afternoons when Elizabeth and the doctor sat in the office and
talked of their two lives they talked of other lives also. Sometimes the doctor
made philosophic epigrams. Then he chuckled with amusement. Now and then after
a period of silence, a word was said or a hint given that strangely illuminated
the life of the speaker, a wish became a desire, or a dream, half dead, flared
suddenly into life. For the most part the words came from the woman and she
said them without looking at the man.</p>
<p>Each time she came to see the doctor the hotel keeper’s wife talked a
little more freely and after an hour or two in his presence went down the
stairway into Main Street feeling renewed and strengthened against the dullness
of her days. With something approaching a girlhood swing to her body she walked
along, but when she had got back to her chair by the window of her room and
when darkness had come on and a girl from the hotel dining room brought her
dinner on a tray, she let it grow cold. Her thoughts ran away to her girlhood
with its passionate longing for adventure and she remembered the arms of men
that had held her when adventure was a possible thing for her. Particularly she
remembered one who had for a time been her lover and who in the moment of his
passion had cried out to her more than a hundred times, saying the same words
madly over and over: “You dear! You dear! You lovely dear!” The
words, she thought, expressed something she would have liked to have achieved
in life.</p>
<p>In her room in the shabby old hotel the sick wife of the hotel keeper began to
weep and, putting her hands to her face, rocked back and forth. The words of
her one friend, Doctor Reefy, rang in her ears. “Love is like a wind
stirring the grass beneath trees on a black night,” he had said.
“You must not try to make love definite. It is the divine accident of
life. If you try to be definite and sure about it and to live beneath the
trees, where soft night winds blow, the long hot day of disappointment comes
swiftly and the gritty dust from passing wagons gathers upon lips inflamed and
made tender by kisses.”</p>
<p>Elizabeth Willard could not remember her mother who had died when she was but
five years old. Her girlhood had been lived in the most haphazard manner
imaginable. Her father was a man who had wanted to be let alone and the affairs
of the hotel would not let him alone. He also had lived and died a sick man.
Every day he arose with a cheerful face, but by ten o’clock in the
morning all the joy had gone out of his heart. When a guest complained of the
fare in the hotel dining room or one of the girls who made up the beds got
married and went away, he stamped on the floor and swore. At night when he went
to bed he thought of his daughter growing up among the stream of people that
drifted in and out of the hotel and was overcome with sadness. As the girl grew
older and began to walk out in the evening with men he wanted to talk to her,
but when he tried was not successful. He always forgot what he wanted to say
and spent the time complaining of his own affairs.</p>
<p>In her girlhood and young womanhood Elizabeth had tried to be a real adventurer
in life. At eighteen life had so gripped her that she was no longer a virgin
but, although she had a half dozen lovers before she married Tom Willard, she
had never entered upon an adventure prompted by desire alone. Like all the
women in the world, she wanted a real lover. Always there was something she
sought blindly, passionately, some hidden wonder in life. The tall beautiful
girl with the swinging stride who had walked under the trees with men was
forever putting out her hand into the darkness and trying to get hold of some
other hand. In all the babble of words that fell from the lips of the men with
whom she adventured she was trying to find what would be for her the true word.</p>
<p>Elizabeth had married Tom Willard, a clerk in her father’s hotel, because
he was at hand and wanted to marry at the time when the determination to marry
came to her. For a while, like most young girls, she thought marriage would
change the face of life. If there was in her mind a doubt of the outcome of the
marriage with Tom she brushed it aside. Her father was ill and near death at
the time and she was perplexed because of the meaningless outcome of an affair
in which she had just been involved. Other girls of her age in Winesburg were
marrying men she had always known, grocery clerks or young farmers. In the
evening they walked in Main Street with their husbands and when she passed they
smiled happily. She began to think that the fact of marriage might be full of
some hidden significance. Young wives with whom she talked spoke softly and
shyly. “It changes things to have a man of your own,” they said.</p>
<p>On the evening before her marriage the perplexed girl had a talk with her
father. Later she wondered if the hours alone with the sick man had not led to
her decision to marry. The father talked of his life and advised the daughter
to avoid being led into another such muddle. He abused Tom Willard, and that
led Elizabeth to come to the clerk’s defense. The sick man became excited
and tried to get out of bed. When she would not let him walk about he began to
complain. “I’ve never been let alone,” he said.
“Although I’ve worked hard I’ve not made the hotel pay. Even
now I owe money at the bank. You’ll find that out when I’m
gone.”</p>
<p>The voice of the sick man became tense with earnestness. Being unable to arise,
he put out his hand and pulled the girl’s head down beside his own.
“There’s a way out,” he whispered. “Don’t marry
Tom Willard or anyone else here in Winesburg. There is eight hundred dollars in
a tin box in my trunk. Take it and go away.”</p>
<p>Again the sick man’s voice became querulous. “You’ve got to
promise,” he declared. “If you won’t promise not to marry,
give me your word that you’ll never tell Tom about the money. It is mine
and if I give it to you I’ve the right to make that demand. Hide it away.
It is to make up to you for my failure as a father. Some time it may prove to
be a door, a great open door to you. Come now, I tell you I’m about to
die, give me your promise.”</p>
<hr />
<p>In Doctor Reefy’s office, Elizabeth, a tired gaunt old woman at
forty-one, sat in a chair near the stove and looked at the floor. By a small
desk near the window sat the doctor. His hands played with a lead pencil that
lay on the desk. Elizabeth talked of her life as a married woman. She became
impersonal and forgot her husband, only using him as a lay figure to give point
to her tale. “And then I was married and it did not turn out at
all,” she said bitterly. “As soon as I had gone into it I began to
be afraid. Perhaps I knew too much before and then perhaps I found out too much
during my first night with him. I don’t remember.</p>
<p>“What a fool I was. When father gave me the money and tried to talk me
out of the thought of marriage, I would not listen. I thought of what the girls
who were married had said of it and I wanted marriage also. It wasn’t Tom
I wanted, it was marriage. When father went to sleep I leaned out of the window
and thought of the life I had led. I didn’t want to be a bad woman. The
town was full of stories about me. I even began to be afraid Tom would change
his mind.”</p>
<p>The woman’s voice began to quiver with excitement. To Doctor Reefy, who
without realizing what was happening had begun to love her, there came an odd
illusion. He thought that as she talked the woman’s body was changing,
that she was becoming younger, straighter, stronger. When he could not shake
off the illusion his mind gave it a professional twist. “It is good for
both her body and her mind, this talking,” he muttered.</p>
<p>The woman began telling of an incident that had happened one afternoon a few
months after her marriage. Her voice became steadier. “In the late
afternoon I went for a drive alone,” she said. “I had a buggy and a
little grey pony I kept in Moyer’s Livery. Tom was painting and
repapering rooms in the hotel. He wanted money and I was trying to make up my
mind to tell him about the eight hundred dollars father had given to me. I
couldn’t decide to do it. I didn’t like him well enough. There was
always paint on his hands and face during those days and he smelled of paint.
He was trying to fix up the old hotel, and make it new and smart.”</p>
<p>The excited woman sat up very straight in her chair and made a quick girlish
movement with her hand as she told of the drive alone on the spring afternoon.
“It was cloudy and a storm threatened,” she said. “Black
clouds made the green of the trees and the grass stand out so that the colors
hurt my eyes. I went out Trunion Pike a mile or more and then turned into a
side road. The little horse went quickly along up hill and down. I was
impatient. Thoughts came and I wanted to get away from my thoughts. I began to
beat the horse. The black clouds settled down and it began to rain. I wanted to
go at a terrible speed, to drive on and on forever. I wanted to get out of
town, out of my clothes, out of my marriage, out of my body, out of everything.
I almost killed the horse, making him run, and when he could not run any more I
got out of the buggy and ran afoot into the darkness until I fell and hurt my
side. I wanted to run away from everything but I wanted to run towards
something too. Don’t you see, dear, how it was?”</p>
<p>Elizabeth sprang out of the chair and began to walk about in the office. She
walked as Doctor Reefy thought he had never seen anyone walk before. To her
whole body there was a swing, a rhythm that intoxicated him. When she came and
knelt on the floor beside his chair he took her into his arms and began to kiss
her passionately. “I cried all the way home,” she said, as she
tried to continue the story of her wild ride, but he did not listen. “You
dear! You lovely dear! Oh you lovely dear!” he muttered and thought he
held in his arms not the tired-out woman of forty-one but a lovely and innocent
girl who had been able by some miracle to project herself out of the husk of
the body of the tired-out woman.</p>
<p>Doctor Reefy did not see the woman he had held in his arms again until after
her death. On the summer afternoon in the office when he was on the point of
becoming her lover a half grotesque little incident brought his love-making
quickly to an end. As the man and woman held each other tightly heavy feet came
tramping up the office stairs. The two sprang to their feet and stood listening
and trembling. The noise on the stairs was made by a clerk from the Paris Dry
Goods Company. With a loud bang he threw an empty box on the pile of rubbish in
the hallway and then went heavily down the stairs. Elizabeth followed him
almost immediately. The thing that had come to life in her as she talked to her
one friend died suddenly. She was hysterical, as was also Doctor Reefy, and did
not want to continue the talk. Along the street she went with the blood still
singing in her body, but when she turned out of Main Street and saw ahead the
lights of the New Willard House, she began to tremble and her knees shook so
that for a moment she thought she would fall in the street.</p>
<p>The sick woman spent the last few months of her life hungering for death. Along
the road of death she went, seeking, hungering. She personified the figure of
death and made him now a strong black-haired youth running over hills, now a
stern quiet man marked and scarred by the business of living. In the darkness
of her room she put out her hand, thrusting it from under the covers of her
bed, and she thought that death like a living thing put out his hand to her.
“Be patient, lover,” she whispered. “Keep yourself young and
beautiful and be patient.”</p>
<p>On the evening when disease laid its heavy hand upon her and defeated her plans
for telling her son George of the eight hundred dollars hidden away, she got
out of bed and crept half across the room pleading with death for another hour
of life. “Wait, dear! The boy! The boy! The boy!” she pleaded as
she tried with all of her strength to fight off the arms of the lover she had
wanted so earnestly.</p>
<hr />
<p>Elizabeth died one day in March in the year when her son George became
eighteen, and the young man had but little sense of the meaning of her death.
Only time could give him that. For a month he had seen her lying white and
still and speechless in her bed, and then one afternoon the doctor stopped him
in the hallway and said a few words.</p>
<p>The young man went into his own room and closed the door. He had a queer empty
feeling in the region of his stomach. For a moment he sat staring at the floor
and then jumping up went for a walk. Along the station platform he went, and
around through residence streets past the high-school building, thinking almost
entirely of his own affairs. The notion of death could not get hold of him and
he was in fact a little annoyed that his mother had died on that day. He had
just received a note from Helen White, the daughter of the town banker, in
answer to one from him. “Tonight I could have gone to see her and now it
will have to be put off,” he thought half angrily.</p>
<p>Elizabeth died on a Friday afternoon at three o’clock. It had been cold
and rainy in the morning but in the afternoon the sun came out. Before she died
she lay paralyzed for six days unable to speak or move and with only her mind
and her eyes alive. For three of the six days she struggled, thinking of her
boy, trying to say some few words in regard to his future, and in her eyes
there was an appeal so touching that all who saw it kept the memory of the
dying woman in their minds for years. Even Tom Willard, who had always half
resented his wife, forgot his resentment and the tears ran out of his eyes and
lodged in his mustache. The mustache had begun to turn grey and Tom colored it
with dye. There was oil in the preparation he used for the purpose and the
tears, catching in the mustache and being brushed away by his hand, formed a
fine mist-like vapor. In his grief Tom Willard’s face looked like the
face of a little dog that has been out a long time in bitter weather.</p>
<p>George came home along Main Street at dark on the day of his mother’s
death and, after going to his own room to brush his hair and clothes, went
along the hallway and into the room where the body lay. There was a candle on
the dressing table by the door and Doctor Reefy sat in a chair by the bed. The
doctor arose and started to go out. He put out his hand as though to greet the
younger man and then awkwardly drew it back again. The air of the room was
heavy with the presence of the two self-conscious human beings, and the man
hurried away.</p>
<p>The dead woman’s son sat down in a chair and looked at the floor. He
again thought of his own affairs and definitely decided he would make a change
in his life, that he would leave Winesburg. “I will go to some city.
Perhaps I can get a job on some newspaper,” he thought, and then his mind
turned to the girl with whom he was to have spent this evening and again he was
half angry at the turn of events that had prevented his going to her.</p>
<p>In the dimly lighted room with the dead woman the young man began to have
thoughts. His mind played with thoughts of life as his mother’s mind had
played with the thought of death. He closed his eyes and imagined that the red
young lips of Helen White touched his own lips. His body trembled and his hands
shook. And then something happened. The boy sprang to his feet and stood
stiffly. He looked at the figure of the dead woman under the sheets and shame
for his thoughts swept over him so that he began to weep. A new notion came
into his mind and he turned and looked guiltily about as though afraid he would
be observed.</p>
<p>George Willard became possessed of a madness to lift the sheet from the body of
his mother and look at her face. The thought that had come into his mind
gripped him terribly. He became convinced that not his mother but someone else
lay in the bed before him. The conviction was so real that it was almost
unbearable. The body under the sheets was long and in death looked young and
graceful. To the boy, held by some strange fancy, it was unspeakably lovely.
The feeling that the body before him was alive, that in another moment a lovely
woman would spring out of the bed and confront him, became so overpowering that
he could not bear the suspense. Again and again he put out his hand. Once he
touched and half lifted the white sheet that covered her, but his courage
failed and he, like Doctor Reefy, turned and went out of the room. In the
hallway outside the door he stopped and trembled so that he had to put a hand
against the wall to support himself. “That’s not my mother.
That’s not my mother in there,” he whispered to himself and again
his body shook with fright and uncertainty. When Aunt Elizabeth Swift, who had
come to watch over the body, came out of an adjoining room he put his hand into
hers and began to sob, shaking his head from side to side, half blind with
grief. “My mother is dead,” he said, and then forgetting the woman
he turned and stared at the door through which he had just come. “The
dear, the dear, oh the lovely dear,” the boy, urged by some impulse
outside himself, muttered aloud.</p>
<hr />
<p>As for the eight hundred dollars the dead woman had kept hidden so long and
that was to give George Willard his start in the city, it lay in the tin box
behind the plaster by the foot of his mother’s bed. Elizabeth had put it
there a week after her marriage, breaking the plaster away with a stick. Then
she got one of the workmen her husband was at that time employing about the
hotel to mend the wall. “I jammed the corner of the bed against
it,” she had explained to her husband, unable at the moment to give up
her dream of release, the release that after all came to her but twice in her
life, in the moments when her lovers Death and Doctor Reefy held her in their
arms.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap24"></SPAN>SOPHISTICATION</h2>
<p>It was early evening of a day in the late fall and the Winesburg County Fair
had brought crowds of country people into town. The day had been clear and the
night came on warm and pleasant. On the Trunion Pike, where the road after it
left town stretched away between berry fields now covered with dry brown
leaves, the dust from passing wagons arose in clouds. Children, curled into
little balls, slept on the straw scattered on wagon beds. Their hair was full
of dust and their fingers black and sticky. The dust rolled away over the
fields and the departing sun set it ablaze with colors.</p>
<p>In the main street of Winesburg crowds filled the stores and the sidewalks.
Night came on, horses whinnied, the clerks in the stores ran madly about,
children became lost and cried lustily, an American town worked terribly at the
task of amusing itself.</p>
<p>Pushing his way through the crowds in Main Street, young George Willard
concealed himself in the stairway leading to Doctor Reefy’s office and
looked at the people. With feverish eyes he watched the faces drifting past
under the store lights. Thoughts kept coming into his head and he did not want
to think. He stamped impatiently on the wooden steps and looked sharply about.
“Well, is she going to stay with him all day? Have I done all this
waiting for nothing?” he muttered.</p>
<p>George Willard, the Ohio village boy, was fast growing into manhood and new
thoughts had been coming into his mind. All that day, amid the jam of people at
the Fair, he had gone about feeling lonely. He was about to leave Winesburg to
go away to some city where he hoped to get work on a city newspaper and he felt
grown up. The mood that had taken possession of him was a thing known to men
and unknown to boys. He felt old and a little tired. Memories awoke in him. To
his mind his new sense of maturity set him apart, made of him a half-tragic
figure. He wanted someone to understand the feeling that had taken possession
of him after his mother’s death.</p>
<p>There is a time in the life of every boy when he for the first time takes the
backward view of life. Perhaps that is the moment when he crosses the line into
manhood. The boy is walking through the street of his town. He is thinking of
the future and of the figure he will cut in the world. Ambitions and regrets
awake within him. Suddenly something happens; he stops under a tree and waits
as for a voice calling his name. Ghosts of old things creep into his
consciousness; the voices outside of himself whisper a message concerning the
limitations of life. From being quite sure of himself and his future he becomes
not at all sure. If he be an imaginative boy a door is torn open and for the
first time he looks out upon the world, seeing, as though they marched in
procession before him, the countless figures of men who before his time have
come out of nothingness into the world, lived their lives and again disappeared
into nothingness. The sadness of sophistication has come to the boy. With a
little gasp he sees himself as merely a leaf blown by the wind through the
streets of his village. He knows that in spite of all the stout talk of his
fellows he must live and die in uncertainty, a thing blown by the winds, a
thing destined like corn to wilt in the sun. He shivers and looks eagerly
about. The eighteen years he has lived seem but a moment, a breathing space in
the long march of humanity. Already he hears death calling. With all his heart
he wants to come close to some other human, touch someone with his hands, be
touched by the hand of another. If he prefers that the other be a woman, that
is because he believes that a woman will be gentle, that she will understand.
He wants, most of all, understanding.</p>
<p>When the moment of sophistication came to George Willard his mind turned to
Helen White, the Winesburg banker’s daughter. Always he had been
conscious of the girl growing into womanhood as he grew into manhood. Once on a
summer night when he was eighteen, he had walked with her on a country road and
in her presence had given way to an impulse to boast, to make himself appear
big and significant in her eyes. Now he wanted to see her for another purpose.
He wanted to tell her of the new impulses that had come to him. He had tried to
make her think of him as a man when he knew nothing of manhood and now he
wanted to be with her and to try to make her feel the change he believed had
taken place in his nature.</p>
<p>As for Helen White, she also had come to a period of change. What George felt,
she in her young woman’s way felt also. She was no longer a girl and
hungered to reach into the grace and beauty of womanhood. She had come home
from Cleveland, where she was attending college, to spend a day at the Fair.
She also had begun to have memories. During the day she sat in the grand-stand
with a young man, one of the instructors from the college, who was a guest of
her mother’s. The young man was of a pedantic turn of mind and she felt
at once he would not do for her purpose. At the Fair she was glad to be seen in
his company as he was well dressed and a stranger. She knew that the fact of
his presence would create an impression. During the day she was happy, but when
night came on she began to grow restless. She wanted to drive the instructor
away, to get out of his presence. While they sat together in the grand-stand
and while the eyes of former schoolmates were upon them, she paid so much
attention to her escort that he grew interested. “A scholar needs money.
I should marry a woman with money,” he mused.</p>
<p>Helen White was thinking of George Willard even as he wandered gloomily through
the crowds thinking of her. She remembered the summer evening when they had
walked together and wanted to walk with him again. She thought that the months
she had spent in the city, the going to theaters and the seeing of great crowds
wandering in lighted thoroughfares, had changed her profoundly. She wanted him
to feel and be conscious of the change in her nature.</p>
<p>The summer evening together that had left its mark on the memory of both the
young man and woman had, when looked at quite sensibly, been rather stupidly
spent. They had walked out of town along a country road. Then they had stopped
by a fence near a field of young corn and George had taken off his coat and let
it hang on his arm. “Well, I’ve stayed here in
Winesburg—yes—I’ve not yet gone away but I’m growing
up,” he had said. “I’ve been reading books and I’ve
been thinking. I’m going to try to amount to something in life.</p>
<p>“Well,” he explained, “that isn’t the point. Perhaps
I’d better quit talking.”</p>
<p>The confused boy put his hand on the girl’s arm. His voice trembled. The
two started to walk back along the road toward town. In his desperation George
boasted, “I’m going to be a big man, the biggest that ever lived
here in Winesburg,” he declared. “I want you to do something, I
don’t know what. Perhaps it is none of my business. I want you to try to
be different from other women. You see the point. It’s none of my
business I tell you. I want you to be a beautiful woman. You see what I
want.”</p>
<p>The boy’s voice failed and in silence the two came back into town and
went along the street to Helen White’s house. At the gate he tried to say
something impressive. Speeches he had thought out came into his head, but they
seemed utterly pointless. “I thought—I used to think—I had it
in my mind you would marry Seth Richmond. Now I know you won’t,”
was all he could find to say as she went through the gate and toward the door
of her house.</p>
<p>On the warm fall evening as he stood in the stairway and looked at the crowd
drifting through Main Street, George thought of the talk beside the field of
young corn and was ashamed of the figure he had made of himself. In the street
the people surged up and down like cattle confined in a pen. Buggies and wagons
almost filled the narrow thoroughfare. A band played and small boys raced along
the sidewalk, diving between the legs of men. Young men with shining red faces
walked awkwardly about with girls on their arms. In a room above one of the
stores, where a dance was to be held, the fiddlers tuned their instruments. The
broken sounds floated down through an open window and out across the murmur of
voices and the loud blare of the horns of the band. The medley of sounds got on
young Willard’s nerves. Everywhere, on all sides, the sense of crowding,
moving life closed in about him. He wanted to run away by himself and think.
“If she wants to stay with that fellow she may. Why should I care? What
difference does it make to me?” he growled and went along Main Street and
through Hern’s Grocery into a side street.</p>
<p>George felt so utterly lonely and dejected that he wanted to weep but pride
made him walk rapidly along, swinging his arms. He came to Wesley Moyer’s
livery barn and stopped in the shadows to listen to a group of men who talked
of a race Wesley’s stallion, Tony Tip, had won at the Fair during the
afternoon. A crowd had gathered in front of the barn and before the crowd
walked Wesley, prancing up and down boasting. He held a whip in his hand and
kept tapping the ground. Little puffs of dust arose in the lamplight.
“Hell, quit your talking,” Wesley exclaimed. “I wasn’t
afraid, I knew I had ’em beat all the time. I wasn’t afraid.”</p>
<p>Ordinarily George Willard would have been intensely interested in the boasting
of Moyer, the horseman. Now it made him angry. He turned and hurried away along
the street. “Old windbag,” he sputtered. “Why does he want to
be bragging? Why don’t he shut up?”</p>
<p>George went into a vacant lot and, as he hurried along, fell over a pile of
rubbish. A nail protruding from an empty barrel tore his trousers. He sat down
on the ground and swore. With a pin he mended the torn place and then arose and
went on. “I’ll go to Helen White’s house, that’s what
I’ll do. I’ll walk right in. I’ll say that I want to see her.
I’ll walk right in and sit down, that’s what I’ll do,”
he declared, climbing over a fence and beginning to run.</p>
<hr />
<p>On the veranda of Banker White’s house Helen was restless and distraught.
The instructor sat between the mother and daughter. His talk wearied the girl.
Although he had also been raised in an Ohio town, the instructor began to put
on the airs of the city. He wanted to appear cosmopolitan. “I like the
chance you have given me to study the background out of which most of our girls
come,” he declared. “It was good of you, Mrs. White, to have me
down for the day.” He turned to Helen and laughed. “Your life is
still bound up with the life of this town?” he asked. “There are
people here in whom you are interested?” To the girl his voice sounded
pompous and heavy.</p>
<p>Helen arose and went into the house. At the door leading to a garden at the
back she stopped and stood listening. Her mother began to talk. “There is
no one here fit to associate with a girl of Helen’s breeding,” she
said.</p>
<p>Helen ran down a flight of stairs at the back of the house and into the garden.
In the darkness she stopped and stood trembling. It seemed to her that the
world was full of meaningless people saying words. Afire with eagerness she ran
through a garden gate and, turning a corner by the banker’s barn, went
into a little side street. “George! Where are you, George?” she
cried, filled with nervous excitement. She stopped running, and leaned against
a tree to laugh hysterically. Along the dark little street came George Willard,
still saying words. “I’m going to walk right into her house.
I’ll go right in and sit down,” he declared as he came up to her.
He stopped and stared stupidly. “Come on,” he said and took hold of
her hand. With hanging heads they walked away along the street under the trees.
Dry leaves rustled under foot. Now that he had found her George wondered what
he had better do and say.</p>
<hr />
<p>At the upper end of the Fair Ground, in Winesburg, there is a half decayed old
grand-stand. It has never been painted and the boards are all warped out of
shape. The Fair Ground stands on top of a low hill rising out of the valley of
Wine Creek and from the grand-stand one can see at night, over a cornfield, the
lights of the town reflected against the sky.</p>
<p>George and Helen climbed the hill to the Fair Ground, coming by the path past
Waterworks Pond. The feeling of loneliness and isolation that had come to the
young man in the crowded streets of his town was both broken and intensified by
the presence of Helen. What he felt was reflected in her.</p>
<p>In youth there are always two forces fighting in people. The warm unthinking
little animal struggles against the thing that reflects and remembers, and the
older, the more sophisticated thing had possession of George Willard. Sensing
his mood, Helen walked beside him filled with respect. When they got to the
grand-stand they climbed up under the roof and sat down on one of the long
bench-like seats.</p>
<p>There is something memorable in the experience to be had by going into a fair
ground that stands at the edge of a Middle Western town on a night after the
annual fair has been held. The sensation is one never to be forgotten. On all
sides are ghosts, not of the dead, but of living people. Here, during the day
just passed, have come the people pouring in from the town and the country
around. Farmers with their wives and children and all the people from the
hundreds of little frame houses have gathered within these board walls. Young
girls have laughed and men with beards have talked of the affairs of their
lives. The place has been filled to overflowing with life. It has itched and
squirmed with life and now it is night and the life has all gone away. The
silence is almost terrifying. One conceals oneself standing silently beside the
trunk of a tree and what there is of a reflective tendency in his nature is
intensified. One shudders at the thought of the meaninglessness of life while
at the same instant, and if the people of the town are his people, one loves
life so intensely that tears come into the eyes.</p>
<p>In the darkness under the roof of the grand-stand, George Willard sat beside
Helen White and felt very keenly his own insignificance in the scheme of
existence. Now that he had come out of town where the presence of the people
stirring about, busy with a multitude of affairs, had been so irritating, the
irritation was all gone. The presence of Helen renewed and refreshed him. It
was as though her woman’s hand was assisting him to make some minute
readjustment of the machinery of his life. He began to think of the people in
the town where he had always lived with something like reverence. He had
reverence for Helen. He wanted to love and to be loved by her, but he did not
want at the moment to be confused by her womanhood. In the darkness he took
hold of her hand and when she crept close put a hand on her shoulder. A wind
began to blow and he shivered. With all his strength he tried to hold and to
understand the mood that had come upon him. In that high place in the darkness
the two oddly sensitive human atoms held each other tightly and waited. In the
mind of each was the same thought. “I have come to this lonely place and
here is this other,” was the substance of the thing felt.</p>
<p>In Winesburg the crowded day had run itself out into the long night of the late
fall. Farm horses jogged away along lonely country roads pulling their portion
of weary people. Clerks began to bring samples of goods in off the sidewalks
and lock the doors of stores. In the Opera House a crowd had gathered to see a
show and further down Main Street the fiddlers, their instruments tuned,
sweated and worked to keep the feet of youth flying over a dance floor.</p>
<p>In the darkness in the grand-stand Helen White and George Willard remained
silent. Now and then the spell that held them was broken and they turned and
tried in the dim light to see into each other’s eyes. They kissed but
that impulse did not last. At the upper end of the Fair Ground a half dozen men
worked over horses that had raced during the afternoon. The men had built a
fire and were heating kettles of water. Only their legs could be seen as they
passed back and forth in the light. When the wind blew the little flames of the
fire danced crazily about.</p>
<p>George and Helen arose and walked away into the darkness. They went along a
path past a field of corn that had not yet been cut. The wind whispered among
the dry corn blades. For a moment during the walk back into town the spell that
held them was broken. When they had come to the crest of Waterworks Hill they
stopped by a tree and George again put his hands on the girl’s shoulders.
She embraced him eagerly and then again they drew quickly back from that
impulse. They stopped kissing and stood a little apart. Mutual respect grew big
in them. They were both embarrassed and to relieve their embarrassment dropped
into the animalism of youth. They laughed and began to pull and haul at each
other. In some way chastened and purified by the mood they had been in, they
became, not man and woman, not boy and girl, but excited little animals.</p>
<p>It was so they went down the hill. In the darkness they played like two
splendid young things in a young world. Once, running swiftly forward, Helen
tripped George and he fell. He squirmed and shouted. Shaking with laughter, he
roiled down the hill. Helen ran after him. For just a moment she stopped in the
darkness. There was no way of knowing what woman’s thoughts went through
her mind but, when the bottom of the hill was reached and she came up to the
boy, she took his arm and walked beside him in dignified silence. For some
reason they could not have explained they had both got from their silent
evening together the thing needed. Man or boy, woman or girl, they had for a
moment taken hold of the thing that makes the mature life of men and women in
the modern world possible.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap25"></SPAN>DEPARTURE</h2>
<p>Young George Willard got out of bed at four in the morning. It was April and
the young tree leaves were just coming out of their buds. The trees along the
residence streets in Winesburg are maple and the seeds are winged. When the
wind blows they whirl crazily about, filling the air and making a carpet
underfoot.</p>
<p>George came downstairs into the hotel office carrying a brown leather bag. His
trunk was packed for departure. Since two o’clock he had been awake
thinking of the journey he was about to take and wondering what he would find
at the end of his journey. The boy who slept in the hotel office lay on a cot
by the door. His mouth was open and he snored lustily. George crept past the
cot and went out into the silent deserted main street. The east was pink with
the dawn and long streaks of light climbed into the sky where a few stars still
shone.</p>
<p>Beyond the last house on Trunion Pike in Winesburg there is a great stretch of
open fields. The fields are owned by farmers who live in town and drive
homeward at evening along Trunion Pike in light creaking wagons. In the fields
are planted berries and small fruits. In the late afternoon in the hot summers
when the road and the fields are covered with dust, a smoky haze lies over the
great flat basin of land. To look across it is like looking out across the sea.
In the spring when the land is green the effect is somewhat different. The land
becomes a wide green billiard table on which tiny human insects toil up and
down.</p>
<p>All through his boyhood and young manhood George Willard had been in the habit
of walking on Trunion Pike. He had been in the midst of the great open place on
winter nights when it was covered with snow and only the moon looked down at
him; he had been there in the fall when bleak winds blew and on summer evenings
when the air vibrated with the song of insects. On the April morning he wanted
to go there again, to walk again in the silence. He did walk to where the road
dipped down by a little stream two miles from town and then turned and walked
silently back again. When he got to Main Street clerks were sweeping the
sidewalks before the stores. “Hey, you George. How does it feel to be
going away?” they asked.</p>
<p>The westbound train leaves Winesburg at seven forty-five in the morning. Tom
Little is conductor. His train runs from Cleveland to where it connects with a
great trunk line railroad with terminals in Chicago and New York. Tom has what
in railroad circles is called an “easy run.” Every evening he
returns to his family. In the fall and spring he spends his Sundays fishing in
Lake Erie. He has a round red face and small blue eyes. He knows the people in
the towns along his railroad better than a city man knows the people who live
in his apartment building.</p>
<p>George came down the little incline from the New Willard House at seven
o’clock. Tom Willard carried his bag. The son had become taller than the
father.</p>
<p>On the station platform everyone shook the young man’s hand. More than a
dozen people waited about. Then they talked of their own affairs. Even Will
Henderson, who was lazy and often slept until nine, had got out of bed. George
was embarrassed. Gertrude Wilmot, a tall thin woman of fifty who worked in the
Winesburg post office, came along the station platform. She had never before
paid any attention to George. Now she stopped and put out her hand. In two
words she voiced what everyone felt. “Good luck,” she said sharply
and then turning went on her way.</p>
<p>When the train came into the station George felt relieved. He scampered
hurriedly aboard. Helen White came running along Main Street hoping to have a
parting word with him, but he had found a seat and did not see her. When the
train started Tom Little punched his ticket, grinned and, although he knew
George well and knew on what adventure he was just setting out, made no
comment. Tom had seen a thousand George Willards go out of their towns to the
city. It was a commonplace enough incident with him. In the smoking car there
was a man who had just invited Tom to go on a fishing trip to Sandusky Bay. He
wanted to accept the invitation and talk over details.</p>
<p>George glanced up and down the car to be sure no one was looking, then took out
his pocket-book and counted his money. His mind was occupied with a desire not
to appear green. Almost the last words his father had said to him concerned the
matter of his behavior when he got to the city. “Be a sharp one,”
Tom Willard had said. “Keep your eyes on your money. Be awake.
That’s the ticket. Don’t let anyone think you’re a
greenhorn.”</p>
<p>After George counted his money he looked out of the window and was surprised to
see that the train was still in Winesburg.</p>
<p>The young man, going out of his town to meet the adventure of life, began to
think but he did not think of anything very big or dramatic. Things like his
mother’s death, his departure from Winesburg, the uncertainty of his
future life in the city, the serious and larger aspects of his life did not
come into his mind.</p>
<p>He thought of little things—Turk Smollet wheeling boards through the main
street of his town in the morning, a tall woman, beautifully gowned, who had
once stayed overnight at his father’s hotel, Butch Wheeler the lamp
lighter of Winesburg hurrying through the streets on a summer evening and
holding a torch in his hand, Helen White standing by a window in the Winesburg
post office and putting a stamp on an envelope.</p>
<p>The young man’s mind was carried away by his growing passion for dreams.
One looking at him would not have thought him particularly sharp. With the
recollection of little things occupying his mind he closed his eyes and leaned
back in the car seat. He stayed that way for a long time and when he aroused
himself and again looked out of the car window the town of Winesburg had
disappeared and his life there had become but a background on which to paint
the dreams of his manhood.</p>
<SPAN name="endofbook"></SPAN>
<div style="break-after:column;"></div><br />